Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Professor
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • Project Gutenberg’s The Professor, by (AKA Charlotte Bronte) Currer Bell
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  • it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: The Professor
  • Author: (AKA Charlotte Bronte) Currer Bell
  • Release Date: August 6, 2008 [EBook #1028]
  • Last Updated: November 1, 2016
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROFESSOR ***
  • Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer, and David Widger
  • THE PROFESSOR
  • by (AKA Charlotte Bronte) Currer Bell
  • CONTENTS
  • PREFACE.
  • T H E P R O F E S S O R
  • CHAPTER I. INTRODUCTORY.
  • CHAPTER II.
  • CHAPTER III.
  • CHAPTER IV.
  • CHAPTER V.
  • CHAPTER VI.
  • CHAPTER VII.
  • CHAPTER VIII.
  • CHAPTER IX.
  • CHAPTER X.
  • CHAPTER XI.
  • CHAPTER XII.
  • CHAPTER XIII.
  • CHAPTER XIV.
  • CHAPTER XV.
  • CHAPTER XVI.
  • CHAPTER XVII.
  • CHAPTER XVIII.
  • CHAPTER XIX.
  • CHAPTER XX.
  • CHAPTER XXI.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • CHAPTER XXIV.
  • CHAPTER XXV.
  • PREFACE.
  • This little book was written before either “Jane Eyre” or “Shirley,”
  • and yet no indulgence can be solicited for it on the plea of a first
  • attempt. A first attempt it certainly was not, as the pen which wrote it
  • had been previously worn a good deal in a practice of some years. I had
  • not indeed published anything before I commenced “The Professor,” but
  • in many a crude effort, destroyed almost as soon as composed, I had
  • got over any such taste as I might once have had for ornamented and
  • redundant composition, and come to prefer what was plain and homely.
  • At the same time I had adopted a set of principles on the subject of
  • incident, &c., such as would be generally approved in theory, but the
  • result of which, when carried out into practice, often procures for an
  • author more surprise than pleasure.
  • I said to myself that my hero should work his way through life as I had
  • seen real living men work theirs--that he should never get a shilling
  • he had not earned--that no sudden turns should lift him in a moment to
  • wealth and high station; that whatever small competency he might gain,
  • should be won by the sweat of his brow; that, before he could find so
  • much as an arbour to sit down in, he should master at least half the
  • ascent of “the Hill of Difficulty;” that he should not even marry a
  • beautiful girl or a lady of rank. As Adam’s son he should share Adam’s
  • doom, and drain throughout life a mixed and moderate cup of enjoyment.
  • In the sequel, however, I find that publishers in general scarcely
  • approved of this system, but would have liked something more imaginative
  • and poetical--something more consonant with a highly wrought fancy, with
  • a taste for pathos, with sentiments more tender, elevated, unworldly.
  • Indeed, until an author has tried to dispose of a manuscript of this
  • kind, he can never know what stores of romance and sensibility lie
  • hidden in breasts he would not have suspected of casketing such
  • treasures. Men in business are usually thought to prefer the real; on
  • trial the idea will be often found fallacious: a passionate preference
  • for the wild, wonderful, and thrilling--the strange, startling, and
  • harrowing--agitates divers souls that show a calm and sober surface.
  • Such being the case, the reader will comprehend that to have reached
  • him in the form of a printed book, this brief narrative must have gone
  • through some struggles--which indeed it has. And after all, its
  • worst struggle and strongest ordeal is yet to come but it takes
  • comfort--subdues fear--leans on the staff of a moderate expectation--and
  • mutters under its breath, while lifting its eye to that of the public,
  • “He that is low need fear no fall.”
  • CURRER BELL.
  • The foregoing preface was written by my wife with a view to the
  • publication of “The Professor,” shortly after the appearance of
  • “Shirley.” Being dissuaded from her intention, the authoress made some
  • use of the materials in a subsequent work--“Villette.” As, however,
  • these two stories are in most respects unlike, it has been represented
  • to me that I ought not to withhold “The Professor” from the public. I
  • have therefore consented to its publication.
  • A. B. NICHOLLS
  • Haworth Parsonage,
  • September 22nd, 1856.
  • T H E P R O F E S S O R
  • CHAPTER I. INTRODUCTORY.
  • THE other day, in looking over my papers, I found in my desk the
  • following copy of a letter, sent by me a year since to an old school
  • acquaintance:--
  • “DEAR CHARLES,
  • “I think when you and I were at Eton together, we were neither of
  • us what could be called popular characters: you were a sarcastic,
  • observant, shrewd, cold-blooded creature; my own portrait I will
  • not attempt to draw, but I cannot recollect that it was a strikingly
  • attractive one--can you? What animal magnetism drew thee and me together
  • I know not; certainly I never experienced anything of the Pylades and
  • Orestes sentiment for you, and I have reason to believe that you, on
  • your part, were equally free from all romantic regard to me. Still,
  • out of school hours we walked and talked continually together; when the
  • theme of conversation was our companions or our masters we understood
  • each other, and when I recurred to some sentiment of affection, some
  • vague love of an excellent or beautiful object, whether in animate or
  • inanimate nature, your sardonic coldness did not move me. I felt myself
  • superior to that check THEN as I do NOW.
  • “It is a long time since I wrote to you, and a still longer time since
  • I saw you. Chancing to take up a newspaper of your county the other day,
  • my eye fell upon your name. I began to think of old times; to run over
  • the events which have transpired since we separated; and I sat down
  • and commenced this letter. What you have been doing I know not; but you
  • shall hear, if you choose to listen, how the world has wagged with me.
  • “First, after leaving Eton, I had an interview with my maternal uncles,
  • Lord Tynedale and the Hon. John Seacombe. They asked me if I would enter
  • the Church, and my uncle the nobleman offered me the living of Seacombe,
  • which is in his gift, if I would; then my other uncle, Mr. Seacombe,
  • hinted that when I became rector of Seacombe-cum-Scaife, I might perhaps
  • be allowed to take, as mistress of my house and head of my parish, one
  • of my six cousins, his daughters, all of whom I greatly dislike.
  • “I declined both the Church and matrimony. A good clergyman is a good
  • thing, but I should have made a very bad one. As to the wife--oh how
  • like a night-mare is the thought of being bound for life to one of
  • my cousins! No doubt they are accomplished and pretty; but not an
  • accomplishment, not a charm of theirs, touches a chord in my bosom.
  • To think of passing the winter evenings by the parlour fire-side of
  • Seacombe Rectory alone with one of them--for instance, the large and
  • well-modelled statue, Sarah--no; I should be a bad husband, under such
  • circumstances, as well as a bad clergyman.
  • “When I had declined my uncles’ offers they asked me ‘what I intended
  • to do?’ I said I should reflect. They reminded me that I had no fortune,
  • and no expectation of any, and, after a considerable pause, Lord
  • Tynedale demanded sternly, ‘Whether I had thoughts of following my
  • father’s steps and engaging in trade?’ Now, I had had no thoughts of the
  • sort. I do not think that my turn of mind qualifies me to make a good
  • tradesman; my taste, my ambition does not lie in that way; but such was
  • the scorn expressed in Lord Tynedale’s countenance as he pronounced
  • the word TRADE--such the contemptuous sarcasm of his tone--that I was
  • instantly decided. My father was but a name to me, yet that name I did
  • not like to hear mentioned with a sneer to my very face. I answered
  • then, with haste and warmth, ‘I cannot do better than follow in
  • my father’s steps; yes, I will be a tradesman.’ My uncles did not
  • remonstrate; they and I parted with mutual disgust. In reviewing this
  • transaction, I find that I was quite right to shake off the burden of
  • Tynedale’s patronage, but a fool to offer my shoulders instantly for the
  • reception of another burden--one which might be more intolerable, and
  • which certainly was yet untried.
  • “I wrote instantly to Edward--you know Edward--my only brother, ten
  • years my senior, married to a rich mill-owner’s daughter, and now
  • possessor of the mill and business which was my father’s before he
  • failed. You are aware that my father--once reckoned a Croesus of
  • wealth--became bankrupt a short time previous to his death, and that my
  • mother lived in destitution for some six months after him, unhelped by
  • her aristocratical brothers, whom she had mortally offended by her union
  • with Crimsworth, the----shire manufacturer. At the end of the six months
  • she brought me into the world, and then herself left it without, I
  • should think, much regret, as it contained little hope or comfort for
  • her.
  • “My father’s relations took charge of Edward, as they did of me, till I
  • was nine years old. At that period it chanced that the representation of
  • an important borough in our county fell vacant; Mr. Seacombe stood for
  • it. My uncle Crimsworth, an astute mercantile man, took the opportunity
  • of writing a fierce letter to the candidate, stating that if he and Lord
  • Tynedale did not consent to do something towards the support of their
  • sister’s orphan children, he would expose their relentless and malignant
  • conduct towards that sister, and do his best to turn the circumstances
  • against Mr. Seacombe’s election. That gentleman and Lord T. knew well
  • enough that the Crimsworths were an unscrupulous and determined race;
  • they knew also that they had influence in the borough of X----; and,
  • making a virtue of necessity, they consented to defray the expenses of
  • my education. I was sent to Eton, where I remained ten years, during
  • which space of time Edward and I never met. He, when he grew up, entered
  • into trade, and pursued his calling with such diligence, ability, and
  • success, that now, in his thirtieth year, he was fast making a fortune.
  • Of this I was apprised by the occasional short letters I received from
  • him, some three or four times a year; which said letters never concluded
  • without some expression of determined enmity against the house of
  • Seacombe, and some reproach to me for living, as he said, on the bounty
  • of that house. At first, while still in boyhood, I could not understand
  • why, as I had no parents, I should not be indebted to my uncles Tynedale
  • and Seacombe for my education; but as I grew up, and heard by degrees of
  • the persevering hostility, the hatred till death evinced by them against
  • my father--of the sufferings of my mother--of all the wrongs, in short,
  • of our house--then did I conceive shame of the dependence in which I
  • lived, and form a resolution no more to take bread from hands which had
  • refused to minister to the necessities of my dying mother. It was by
  • these feelings I was influenced when I refused the Rectory of Seacombe,
  • and the union with one of my patrician cousins.
  • “An irreparable breach thus being effected between my uncles and myself,
  • I wrote to Edward; told him what had occurred, and informed him of my
  • intention to follow his steps and be a tradesman. I asked, moreover, if
  • he could give me employment. His answer expressed no approbation of my
  • conduct, but he said I might come down to ----shire, if I liked, and he
  • would ‘see what could be done in the way of furnishing me with work.’
  • I repressed all--even mental comment on his note--packed my trunk and
  • carpet-bag, and started for the North directly.
  • “After two days’ travelling (railroads were not then in existence) I
  • arrived, one wet October afternoon, in the town of X----. I had always
  • understood that Edward lived in this town, but on inquiry I found that
  • it was only Mr. Crimsworth’s mill and warehouse which were situated in
  • the smoky atmosphere of Bigben Close; his RESIDENCE lay four miles out,
  • in the country.
  • “It was late in the evening when I alighted at the gates of the
  • habitation designated to me as my brother’s. As I advanced up the
  • avenue, I could see through the shades of twilight, and the dark gloomy
  • mists which deepened those shades, that the house was large, and the
  • grounds surrounding it sufficiently spacious. I paused a moment on the
  • lawn in front, and leaning my back against a tall tree which rose in the
  • centre, I gazed with interest on the exterior of Crimsworth Hall.
  • “Edward is rich,” thought I to myself. ‘I believed him to be doing
  • well--but I did not know he was master of a mansion like this.’ Cutting
  • short all marvelling; speculation, conjecture, &c., I advanced to the
  • front door and rang. A man-servant opened it--I announced myself--he
  • relieved me of my wet cloak and carpet-bag, and ushered me into a
  • room furnished as a library, where there was a bright fire and candles
  • burning on the table; he informed me that his master was not yet
  • returned from X----market, but that he would certainly be at home in the
  • course of half an hour.
  • “Being left to myself, I took the stuffed easy chair, covered with red
  • morocco, which stood by the fireside, and while my eyes watched the
  • flames dart from the glowing coals, and the cinders fall at intervals on
  • the hearth, my mind busied itself in conjectures concerning the meeting
  • about to take place. Amidst much that was doubtful in the subject of
  • these conjectures, there was one thing tolerably certain--I was in no
  • danger of encountering severe disappointment; from this, the moderation
  • of my expectations guaranteed me. I anticipated no overflowings of
  • fraternal tenderness; Edward’s letters had always been such as to
  • prevent the engendering or harbouring of delusions of this sort. Still,
  • as I sat awaiting his arrival, I felt eager--very eager--I cannot tell
  • you why; my hand, so utterly a stranger to the grasp of a kindred hand,
  • clenched itself to repress the tremor with which impatience would fain
  • have shaken it.
  • “I thought of my uncles; and as I was engaged in wondering whether
  • Edward’s indifference would equal the cold disdain I had always
  • experienced from them, I heard the avenue gates open: wheels approached
  • the house; Mr. Crimsworth was arrived; and after the lapse of some
  • minutes, and a brief dialogue between himself and his servant in the
  • hall, his tread drew near the library door--that tread alone announced
  • the master of the house.
  • “I still retained some confused recollection of Edward as he was ten
  • years ago--a tall, wiry, raw youth; NOW, as I rose from my seat and
  • turned towards the library door, I saw a fine-looking and powerful man,
  • light-complexioned, well-made, and of athletic proportions; the first
  • glance made me aware of an air of promptitude and sharpness, shown
  • as well in his movements as in his port, his eye, and the general
  • expression of his face. He greeted me with brevity, and, in the moment
  • of shaking hands, scanned me from head to foot; he took his seat in the
  • morocco covered arm-chair, and motioned me to another seat.
  • “‘I expected you would have called at the counting-house in the Close,’
  • said he; and his voice, I noticed, had an abrupt accent, probably
  • habitual to him; he spoke also with a guttural northern tone, which
  • sounded harsh in my ears, accustomed to the silvery utterance of the
  • South.
  • “‘The landlord of the inn, where the coach stopped, directed me here,’
  • said I. ‘I doubted at first the accuracy of his information, not being
  • aware that you had such a residence as this.’
  • “‘Oh, it is all right!’ he replied, ‘only I was kept half an hour behind
  • time, waiting for you--that is all. I thought you must be coming by the
  • eight o’clock coach.’
  • “I expressed regret that he had had to wait; he made no answer, but
  • stirred the fire, as if to cover a movement of impatience; then he
  • scanned me again.
  • “I felt an inward satisfaction that I had not, in the first moment of
  • meeting, betrayed any warmth, any enthusiasm; that I had saluted this
  • man with a quiet and steady phlegm.
  • “‘Have you quite broken with Tynedale and Seacombe?’ he asked hastily.
  • “‘I do not think I shall have any further communication with them; my
  • refusal of their proposals will, I fancy, operate as a barrier against
  • all future intercourse.’
  • “‘Why,’ said he, ‘I may as well remind you at the very outset of our
  • connection, that “no man can serve two masters.” Acquaintance with Lord
  • Tynedale will be incompatible with assistance from me.’ There was a kind
  • of gratuitous menace in his eye as he looked at me in finishing this
  • observation.
  • “Feeling no disposition to reply to him, I contented myself with an
  • inward speculation on the differences which exist in the constitution
  • of men’s minds. I do not know what inference Mr. Crimsworth drew from
  • my silence--whether he considered it a symptom of contumacity or an
  • evidence of my being cowed by his peremptory manner. After a long and
  • hard stare at me, he rose sharply from his seat.
  • “‘To-morrow,’ said he, ‘I shall call your attention to some other
  • points; but now it is supper time, and Mrs. Crimsworth is probably
  • waiting; will you come?’
  • “He strode from the room, and I followed. In crossing the hall, I
  • wondered what Mrs. Crimsworth might be. ‘Is she,’ thought I, ‘as alien
  • to what I like as Tynedale, Seacombe, the Misses Seacombe--as the
  • affectionate relative now striding before me? or is she better than
  • these? Shall I, in conversing with her, feel free to show something of
  • my real nature; or--’ Further conjectures were arrested by my entrance
  • into the dining-room.
  • “A lamp, burning under a shade of ground-glass, showed a handsome
  • apartment, wainscoted with oak; supper was laid on the table; by the
  • fire-place, standing as if waiting our entrance, appeared a lady;
  • she was young, tall, and well shaped; her dress was handsome and
  • fashionable: so much my first glance sufficed to ascertain. A gay
  • salutation passed between her and Mr. Crimsworth; she chid him, half
  • playfully, half poutingly, for being late; her voice (I always take
  • voices into the account in judging of character) was lively--it
  • indicated, I thought, good animal spirits. Mr. Crimsworth soon checked
  • her animated scolding with a kiss--a kiss that still told of the
  • bridegroom (they had not yet been married a year); she took her seat
  • at the supper-table in first-rate spirits. Perceiving me, she begged
  • my pardon for not noticing me before, and then shook hands with me, as
  • ladies do when a flow of good-humour disposes them to be cheerful to
  • all, even the most indifferent of their acquaintance. It was now further
  • obvious to me that she had a good complexion, and features sufficiently
  • marked but agreeable; her hair was red--quite red. She and Edward
  • talked much, always in a vein of playful contention; she was vexed, or
  • pretended to be vexed, that he had that day driven a vicious horse in
  • the gig, and he made light of her fears. Sometimes she appealed to me.
  • “‘Now, Mr. William, isn’t it absurd in Edward to talk so? He says he
  • will drive Jack, and no other horse, and the brute has thrown him twice
  • already.
  • “She spoke with a kind of lisp, not disagreeable, but childish. I
  • soon saw also that there was more than girlish--a somewhat infantine
  • expression in her by no means small features; this lisp and expression
  • were, I have no doubt, a charm in Edward’s eyes, and would be so to
  • those of most men, but they were not to mine. I sought her eye, desirous
  • to read there the intelligence which I could not discern in her face
  • or hear in her conversation; it was merry, rather small; by turns I saw
  • vivacity, vanity, coquetry, look out through its irid, but I watched in
  • vain for a glimpse of soul. I am no Oriental; white necks, carmine lips
  • and cheeks, clusters of bright curls, do not suffice for me without that
  • Promethean spark which will live after the roses and lilies are faded,
  • the burnished hair grown grey. In sunshine, in prosperity, the flowers
  • are very well; but how many wet days are there in life--November seasons
  • of disaster, when a man’s hearth and home would be cold indeed, without
  • the clear, cheering gleam of intellect.
  • “Having perused the fair page of Mrs. Crimsworth’s face, a deep,
  • involuntary sigh announced my disappointment; she took it as a homage to
  • her beauty, and Edward, who was evidently proud of his rich and handsome
  • young wife, threw on me a glance--half ridicule, half ire.
  • “I turned from them both, and gazing wearily round the room, I saw two
  • pictures set in the oak panelling--one on each side the mantel-piece.
  • Ceasing to take part in the bantering conversation that flowed on
  • between Mr. and Mrs. Crimsworth, I bent my thoughts to the examination
  • of these pictures. They were portraits--a lady and a gentleman, both
  • costumed in the fashion of twenty years ago. The gentleman was in the
  • shade. I could not see him well. The lady had the benefit of a full beam
  • from the softly shaded lamp. I presently recognised her; I had seen this
  • picture before in childhood; it was my mother; that and the companion
  • picture being the only heir-looms saved out of the sale of my father’s
  • property.
  • “The face, I remembered, had pleased me as a boy, but then I did not
  • understand it; now I knew how rare that class of face is in the world,
  • and I appreciated keenly its thoughtful, yet gentle expression. The
  • serious grey eye possessed for me a strong charm, as did certain lines
  • in the features indicative of most true and tender feeling. I was sorry
  • it was only a picture.
  • “I soon left Mr. and Mrs. Crimsworth to themselves; a servant
  • conducted me to my bed-room; in closing my chamber-door, I shut out all
  • intruders--you, Charles, as well as the rest.
  • “Good-bye for the present,
  • “WILLIAM CRIMSWORTH.”
  • To this letter I never got an answer; before my old friend received it,
  • he had accepted a Government appointment in one of the colonies, and was
  • already on his way to the scene of his official labours. What has become
  • of him since, I know not.
  • The leisure time I have at command, and which I intended to employ
  • for his private benefit, I shall now dedicate to that of the public at
  • large. My narrative is not exciting, and above all, not marvellous;
  • but it may interest some individuals, who, having toiled in the same
  • vocation as myself, will find in my experience frequent reflections
  • of their own. The above letter will serve as an introduction. I now
  • proceed.
  • CHAPTER II.
  • A FINE October morning succeeded to the foggy evening that had witnessed
  • my first introduction to Crimsworth Hall. I was early up and walking in
  • the large park-like meadow surrounding the house. The autumn sun, rising
  • over the ----shire hills, disclosed a pleasant country; woods brown and
  • mellow varied the fields from which the harvest had been lately carried;
  • a river, gliding between the woods, caught on its surface the somewhat
  • cold gleam of the October sun and sky; at frequent intervals along the
  • banks of the river, tall, cylindrical chimneys, almost like slender
  • round towers, indicated the factories which the trees half concealed;
  • here and there mansions, similar to Crimsworth Hall, occupied agreeable
  • sites on the hill-side; the country wore, on the whole, a cheerful,
  • active, fertile look. Steam, trade, machinery had long banished from
  • it all romance and seclusion. At a distance of five miles, a valley,
  • opening between the low hills, held in its cups the great town of X----.
  • A dense, permanent vapour brooded over this locality--there lay Edward’s
  • “Concern.”
  • I forced my eye to scrutinize this prospect, I forced my mind to dwell
  • on it for a time, and when I found that it communicated no pleasurable
  • emotion to my heart--that it stirred in me none of the hopes a man ought
  • to feel, when he sees laid before him the scene of his life’s career--I
  • said to myself, “William, you are a rebel against circumstances; you are
  • a fool, and know not what you want; you have chosen trade and you shall
  • be a tradesman. Look!” I continued mentally--“Look at the sooty smoke in
  • that hollow, and know that there is your post! There you cannot dream,
  • you cannot speculate and theorize--there you shall out and work!”
  • Thus self-schooled, I returned to the house. My brother was in the
  • breakfast-room. I met him collectedly--I could not meet him cheerfully;
  • he was standing on the rug, his back to the fire--how much did I read in
  • the expression of his eye as my glance encountered his, when I advanced
  • to bid him good morning; how much that was contradictory to my nature!
  • He said “Good morning” abruptly and nodded, and then he snatched, rather
  • than took, a newspaper from the table, and began to read it with the air
  • of a master who seizes a pretext to escape the bore of conversing with
  • an underling. It was well I had taken a resolution to endure for a time,
  • or his manner would have gone far to render insupportable the disgust
  • I had just been endeavouring to subdue. I looked at him: I measured his
  • robust frame and powerful proportions; I saw my own reflection in the
  • mirror over the mantel-piece; I amused myself with comparing the two
  • pictures. In face I resembled him, though I was not so handsome; my
  • features were less regular; I had a darker eye, and a broader brow--in
  • form I was greatly inferior--thinner, slighter, not so tall. As an
  • animal, Edward excelled me far; should he prove as paramount in mind
  • as in person I must be a slave--for I must expect from him no lion-like
  • generosity to one weaker than himself; his cold, avaricious eye, his
  • stern, forbidding manner told me he would not spare. Had I then force of
  • mind to cope with him? I did not know; I had never been tried.
  • Mrs. Crimsworth’s entrance diverted my thoughts for a moment. She looked
  • well, dressed in white, her face and her attire shining in morning
  • and bridal freshness. I addressed her with the degree of ease her last
  • night’s careless gaiety seemed to warrant, but she replied with coolness
  • and restraint: her husband had tutored her; she was not to be too
  • familiar with his clerk.
  • As soon as breakfast was over Mr. Crimsworth intimated to me that they
  • were bringing the gig round to the door, and that in five minutes he
  • should expect me to be ready to go down with him to X----. I did not
  • keep him waiting; we were soon dashing at a rapid rate along the
  • road. The horse he drove was the same vicious animal about which Mrs.
  • Crimsworth had expressed her fears the night before. Once or twice
  • Jack seemed disposed to turn restive, but a vigorous and determined
  • application of the whip from the ruthless hand of his master soon
  • compelled him to submission, and Edward’s dilated nostril expressed his
  • triumph in the result of the contest; he scarcely spoke to me during the
  • whole of the brief drive, only opening his lips at intervals to damn his
  • horse.
  • X---- was all stir and bustle when we entered it; we left the clean
  • streets where there were dwelling-houses and shops, churches, and public
  • buildings; we left all these, and turned down to a region of mills and
  • warehouses; thence we passed through two massive gates into a great
  • paved yard, and we were in Bigben Close, and the mill was before us,
  • vomiting soot from its long chimney, and quivering through its thick
  • brick walls with the commotion of its iron bowels. Workpeople were
  • passing to and fro; a waggon was being laden with pieces. Mr. Crimsworth
  • looked from side to side, and seemed at one glance to comprehend all
  • that was going on; he alighted, and leaving his horse and gig to the
  • care of a man who hastened to take the reins from his hand, he bid me
  • follow him to the counting-house. We entered it; a very different place
  • from the parlours of Crimsworth Hall--a place for business, with a bare,
  • planked floor, a safe, two high desks and stools, and some chairs. A
  • person was seated at one of the desks, who took off his square cap when
  • Mr. Crimsworth entered, and in an instant was again absorbed in his
  • occupation of writing or calculating--I know not which.
  • Mr. Crimsworth, having removed his mackintosh, sat down by the fire. I
  • remained standing near the hearth; he said presently--
  • “Steighton, you may leave the room; I have some business to transact
  • with this gentleman. Come back when you hear the bell.”
  • The individual at the desk rose and departed, closing the door as he
  • went out. Mr. Crimsworth stirred the fire, then folded his arms, and sat
  • a moment thinking, his lips compressed, his brow knit. I had nothing to
  • do but to watch him--how well his features were cut! what a handsome man
  • he was! Whence, then, came that air of contraction--that narrow and hard
  • aspect on his forehead, in all his lineaments?
  • Turning to me he began abruptly:
  • “You are come down to ----shire to learn to be a tradesman?”
  • “Yes, I am.”
  • “Have you made up your mind on the point? Let me know that at once.”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Well, I am not bound to help you, but I have a place here vacant, if
  • you are qualified for it. I will take you on trial. What can you do? Do
  • you know anything besides that useless trash of college learning--Greek,
  • Latin, and so forth?”
  • “I have studied mathematics.”
  • “Stuff! I dare say you have.”
  • “I can read and write French and German.”
  • “Hum!” He reflected a moment, then opening a drawer in a desk near him
  • took out a letter, and gave it to me.
  • “Can you read that?” he asked.
  • It was a German commercial letter; I translated it; I could not tell
  • whether he was gratified or not--his countenance remained fixed.
  • “It is well,” he said, after a pause, “that you are acquainted with
  • something useful, something that may enable you to earn your board and
  • lodging: since you know French and German, I will take you as second
  • clerk to manage the foreign correspondence of the house. I shall give
  • you a good salary--90l. a year--and now,” he continued, raising his
  • voice, “hear once for all what I have to say about our relationship, and
  • all that sort of humbug! I must have no nonsense on that point; it
  • would never suit me. I shall excuse you nothing on the plea of being my
  • brother; if I find you stupid, negligent, dissipated, idle, or possessed
  • of any faults detrimental to the interests of the house, I shall dismiss
  • you as I would any other clerk. Ninety pounds a year are good wages, and
  • I expect to have the full value of my money out of you; remember,
  • too, that things are on a practical footing in my
  • establishment--business-like habits, feelings, and ideas, suit me best.
  • Do you understand?”
  • “Partly,” I replied. “I suppose you mean that I am to do my work for my
  • wages; not to expect favour from you, and not to depend on you for any
  • help but what I earn; that suits me exactly, and on these terms I will
  • consent to be your clerk.”
  • I turned on my heel, and walked to the window; this time I did not
  • consult his face to learn his opinion: what it was I do not know, nor
  • did I then care. After a silence of some minutes he recommenced:--
  • “You perhaps expect to be accommodated with apartments at Crimsworth
  • Hall, and to go and come with me in the gig. I wish you, however, to be
  • aware that such an arrangement would be quite inconvenient to me. I
  • like to have the seat in my gig at liberty for any gentleman whom for
  • business reasons I may wish to take down to the hall for a night or so.
  • You will seek out lodgings in X----.”
  • Quitting the window, I walked back to the hearth.
  • “Of course I shall seek out lodgings in X----,” I answered. “It would
  • not suit me either to lodge at Crimsworth Hall.”
  • My tone was quiet. I always speak quietly. Yet Mr. Crimsworth’s blue eye
  • became incensed; he took his revenge rather oddly. Turning to me he said
  • bluntly--
  • “You are poor enough, I suppose; how do you expect to live till your
  • quarter’s salary becomes due?”
  • “I shall get on,” said I.
  • “How do you expect to live?” he repeated in a louder voice.
  • “As I can, Mr. Crimsworth.”
  • “Get into debt at your peril! that’s all,” he answered. “For aught I
  • know you may have extravagant aristocratic habits: if you have, drop
  • them; I tolerate nothing of the sort here, and I will never give you a
  • shilling extra, whatever liabilities you may incur--mind that.”
  • “Yes, Mr. Crimsworth, you will find I have a good memory.”
  • I said no more. I did not think the time was come for much parley. I
  • had an instinctive feeling that it would be folly to let one’s temper
  • effervesce often with such a man as Edward. I said to myself, “I will
  • place my cup under this continual dropping; it shall stand there still
  • and steady; when full, it will run over of itself--meantime patience.
  • Two things are certain. I am capable of performing the work Mr.
  • Crimsworth has set me; I can earn my wages conscientiously, and those
  • wages are sufficient to enable me to live. As to the fact of my brother
  • assuming towards me the bearing of a proud, harsh master, the fault is
  • his, not mine; and shall his injustice, his bad feeling, turn me at once
  • aside from the path I have chosen? No; at least, ere I deviate, I will
  • advance far enough to see whither my career tends. As yet I am only
  • pressing in at the entrance--a strait gate enough; it ought to have a
  • good terminus.” While I thus reasoned, Mr. Crimsworth rang a bell; his
  • first clerk, the individual dismissed previously to our conference,
  • re-entered.
  • “Mr. Steighton,” said he, “show Mr. William the letters from Voss,
  • Brothers, and give him English copies of the answers; he will translate
  • them.”
  • Mr. Steighton, a man of about thirty-five, with a face at once sly and
  • heavy, hastened to execute this order; he laid the letters on the
  • desk, and I was soon seated at it, and engaged in rendering the English
  • answers into German. A sentiment of keen pleasure accompanied this first
  • effort to earn my own living--a sentiment neither poisoned nor weakened
  • by the presence of the taskmaster, who stood and watched me for some
  • time as I wrote. I thought he was trying to read my character, but I
  • felt as secure against his scrutiny as if I had had on a casque with the
  • visor down--or rather I showed him my countenance with the confidence
  • that one would show an unlearned man a letter written in Greek; he might
  • see lines, and trace characters, but he could make nothing of them; my
  • nature was not his nature, and its signs were to him like the words of
  • an unknown tongue. Ere long he turned away abruptly, as if baffled, and
  • left the counting-house; he returned to it but twice in the course of
  • that day; each time he mixed and swallowed a glass of brandy-and-water,
  • the materials for making which he extracted from a cupboard on one side
  • of the fireplace; having glanced at my translations--he could read both
  • French and German--he went out again in silence.
  • CHAPTER III.
  • I SERVED Edward as his second clerk faithfully, punctually, diligently.
  • What was given me to do I had the power and the determination to do
  • well. Mr. Crimsworth watched sharply for defects, but found none; he set
  • Timothy Steighton, his favourite and head man, to watch also. Tim was
  • baffled; I was as exact as himself, and quicker. Mr. Crimsworth made
  • inquiries as to how I lived, whether I got into debt--no, my accounts
  • with my landlady were always straight. I had hired small lodgings, which
  • I contrived to pay for out of a slender fund--the accumulated savings of
  • my Eton pocket-money; for as it had ever been abhorrent to my nature to
  • ask pecuniary assistance, I had early acquired habits of self-denying
  • economy; husbanding my monthly allowance with anxious care, in order to
  • obviate the danger of being forced, in some moment of future exigency,
  • to beg additional aid. I remember many called me miser at the time,
  • and I used to couple the reproach with this consolation--better to be
  • misunderstood now than repulsed hereafter. At this day I had my reward;
  • I had had it before, when on parting with my irritated uncles one of
  • them threw down on the table before me a 5l. note, which I was able to
  • leave there, saying that my travelling expenses were already provided
  • for. Mr. Crimsworth employed Tim to find out whether my landlady had
  • any complaint to make on the score of my morals; she answered that she
  • believed I was a very religious man, and asked Tim, in her turn, if he
  • thought I had any intention of going into the Church some day; for, she
  • said, she had had young curates to lodge in her house who were nothing
  • equal to me for steadiness and quietness. Tim was “a religious man”
  • himself; indeed, he was “a joined Methodist,” which did not (be it
  • understood) prevent him from being at the same time an engrained rascal,
  • and he came away much posed at hearing this account of my piety. Having
  • imparted it to Mr. Crimsworth, that gentleman, who himself frequented
  • no place of worship, and owned no God but Mammon, turned the information
  • into a weapon of attack against the equability of my temper. He
  • commenced a series of covert sneers, of which I did not at first
  • perceive the drift, till my landlady happened to relate the conversation
  • she had had with Mr. Steighton; this enlightened me; afterwards I came
  • to the counting-house prepared, and managed to receive the millowner’s
  • blasphemous sarcasms, when next levelled at me, on a buckler of
  • impenetrable indifference. Ere long he tired of wasting his ammunition
  • on a statue, but he did not throw away the shafts--he only kept them
  • quiet in his quiver.
  • Once during my clerkship I had an invitation to Crimsworth Hall; it
  • was on the occasion of a large party given in honour of the master’s
  • birthday; he had always been accustomed to invite his clerks on similar
  • anniversaries, and could not well pass me over; I was, however, kept
  • strictly in the background. Mrs. Crimsworth, elegantly dressed in satin
  • and lace, blooming in youth and health, vouchsafed me no more notice
  • than was expressed by a distant move; Crimsworth, of course, never
  • spoke to me; I was introduced to none of the band of young ladies, who,
  • enveloped in silvery clouds of white gauze and muslin, sat in array
  • against me on the opposite side of a long and large room; in fact, I was
  • fairly isolated, and could but contemplate the shining ones from afar,
  • and when weary of such a dazzling scene, turn for a change to the
  • consideration of the carpet pattern. Mr. Crimsworth, standing on the
  • rug, his elbow supported by the marble mantelpiece, and about him
  • a group of very pretty girls, with whom he conversed gaily--Mr.
  • Crimsworth, thus placed, glanced at me; I looked weary, solitary, kept
  • down like some desolate tutor or governess; he was satisfied.
  • Dancing began; I should have liked well enough to be introduced to some
  • pleasing and intelligent girl, and to have freedom and opportunity
  • to show that I could both feel and communicate the pleasure of social
  • intercourse--that I was not, in short, a block, or a piece of furniture,
  • but an acting, thinking, sentient man. Many smiling faces and graceful
  • figures glided past me, but the smiles were lavished on other eyes, the
  • figures sustained by other hands than mine. I turned away tantalized,
  • left the dancers, and wandered into the oak-panelled dining-room. No
  • fibre of sympathy united me to any living thing in this house; I looked
  • for and found my mother’s picture. I took a wax taper from a stand,
  • and held it up. I gazed long, earnestly; my heart grew to the image.
  • My mother, I perceived, had bequeathed to me much of her features and
  • countenance--her forehead, her eyes, her complexion. No regular beauty
  • pleases egotistical human beings so much as a softened and refined
  • likeness of themselves; for this reason, fathers regard with complacency
  • the lineaments of their daughters’ faces, where frequently their own
  • similitude is found flatteringly associated with softness of hue and
  • delicacy of outline. I was just wondering how that picture, to me so
  • interesting, would strike an impartial spectator, when a voice close
  • behind me pronounced the words--
  • “Humph! there’s some sense in that face.”
  • I turned; at my elbow stood a tall man, young, though probably five or
  • six years older than I--in other respects of an appearance the opposite
  • to common place; though just now, as I am not disposed to paint his
  • portrait in detail, the reader must be content with the silhouette I
  • have just thrown off; it was all I myself saw of him for the moment: I
  • did not investigate the colour of his eyebrows, nor of his eyes either;
  • I saw his stature, and the outline of his shape; I saw, too, his
  • fastidious-looking RETROUSSE nose; these observations, few in number,
  • and general in character (the last excepted), sufficed, for they enabled
  • me to recognize him.
  • “Good evening, Mr. Hunsden,” muttered I with a bow, and then, like a
  • shy noodle as I was, I began moving away--and why? Simply because Mr.
  • Hunsden was a manufacturer and a millowner, and I was only a clerk, and
  • my instinct propelled me from my superior. I had frequently seen Hunsden
  • in Bigben Close, where he came almost weekly to transact business with
  • Mr. Crimsworth, but I had never spoken to him, nor he to me, and I owed
  • him a sort of involuntary grudge, because he had more than once been the
  • tacit witness of insults offered by Edward to me. I had the conviction
  • that he could only regard me as a poor-spirited slave, wherefore I now
  • went about to shun his presence and eschew his conversation.
  • “Where are you going?” asked he, as I edged off sideways. I had already
  • noticed that Mr. Hunsden indulged in abrupt forms of speech, and I
  • perversely said to myself--
  • “He thinks he may speak as he likes to a poor clerk; but my mood is not,
  • perhaps, so supple as he deems it, and his rough freedom pleases me not
  • at all.”
  • I made some slight reply, rather indifferent than courteous, and
  • continued to move away. He coolly planted himself in my path.
  • “Stay here awhile,” said he: “it is so hot in the dancing-room; besides,
  • you don’t dance; you have not had a partner to-night.”
  • He was right, and as he spoke neither his look, tone, nor manner
  • displeased me; my AMOUR-PROPRE was propitiated; he had not addressed
  • me out of condescension, but because, having repaired to the cool
  • dining-room for refreshment, he now wanted some one to talk to, by way
  • of temporary amusement. I hate to be condescended to, but I like well
  • enough to oblige; I stayed.
  • “That is a good picture,” he continued, recurring to the portrait.
  • “Do you consider the face pretty?” I asked.
  • “Pretty! no--how can it be pretty, with sunk eyes and hollow cheeks?
  • but it is peculiar; it seems to think. You could have a talk with that
  • woman, if she were alive, on other subjects than dress, visiting, and
  • compliments.”
  • I agreed with him, but did not say so. He went on.
  • “Not that I admire a head of that sort; it wants character and force;
  • there’s too much of the sen-si-tive (so he articulated it, curling
  • his lip at the same time) in that mouth; besides, there is Aristocrat
  • written on the brow and defined in the figure; I hate your aristocrats.”
  • “You think, then, Mr. Hunsden, that patrician descent may be read in a
  • distinctive cast of form and features?”
  • “Patrician descent be hanged! Who doubts that your lordlings may have
  • their ‘distinctive cast of form and features’ as much as we----shire
  • tradesmen have ours? But which is the best? Not theirs assuredly. As
  • to their women, it is a little different: they cultivate beauty from
  • childhood upwards, and may by care and training attain to a certain
  • degree of excellence in that point, just like the oriental odalisques.
  • Yet even this superiority is doubtful. Compare the figure in that frame
  • with Mrs. Edward Crimsworth--which is the finer animal?”
  • I replied quietly: “Compare yourself and Mr. Edward Crimsworth, Mr
  • Hunsden.”
  • “Oh, Crimsworth is better filled up than I am, I know besides he has a
  • straight nose, arched eyebrows, and all that; but these advantages--if
  • they are advantages--he did not inherit from his mother, the patrician,
  • but from his father, old Crimsworth, who, MY father says, was as
  • veritable a ----shire blue-dyer as ever put indigo in a vat yet withal
  • the handsomest man in the three Ridings. It is you, William, who are
  • the aristocrat of your family, and you are not as fine a fellow as your
  • plebeian brother by long chalk.”
  • There was something in Mr. Hunsden’s point-blank mode of speech which
  • rather pleased me than otherwise because it set me at my ease. I
  • continued the conversation with a degree of interest.
  • “How do you happen to know that I am Mr. Crimsworth’s brother? I thought
  • you and everybody else looked upon me only in the light of a poor
  • clerk.”
  • “Well, and so we do; and what are you but a poor clerk? You do
  • Crimsworth’s work, and he gives you wages--shabby wages they are, too.”
  • I was silent. Hunsden’s language now bordered on the impertinent, still
  • his manner did not offend me in the least--it only piqued my curiosity;
  • I wanted him to go on, which he did in a little while.
  • “This world is an absurd one,” said he.
  • “Why so, Mr. Hunsden?”
  • “I wonder you should ask: you are yourself a strong proof of the
  • absurdity I allude to.”
  • I was determined he should explain himself of his own accord, without my
  • pressing him so to do--so I resumed my silence.
  • “Is it your intention to become a tradesman?” he inquired presently.
  • “It was my serious intention three months ago.”
  • “Humph! the more fool you--you look like a tradesman! What a practical
  • business-like face you have!”
  • “My face is as the Lord made it, Mr. Hunsden.”
  • “The Lord never made either your face or head for X---- What good can
  • your bumps of ideality, comparison, self-esteem, conscientiousness,
  • do you here? But if you like Bigben Close, stay there; it’s your own
  • affair, not mine.”
  • “Perhaps I have no choice.”
  • “Well, I care nought about it--it will make little difference to me what
  • you do or where you go; but I’m cool now--I want to dance again; and
  • I see such a fine girl sitting in the corner of the sofa there by
  • her mamma; see if I don’t get her for a partner in a jiffy! There’s
  • Waddy--Sam Waddy making up to her; won’t I cut him out?”
  • And Mr. Hunsden strode away. I watched him through the open
  • folding-doors; he outstripped Waddy, applied for the hand of the
  • fine girl, and led her off triumphant. She was a tall, well-made,
  • full-formed, dashingly-dressed young woman, much in the style of Mrs. E.
  • Crimsworth; Hunsden whirled her through the waltz with spirit; he kept
  • at her side during the remainder of the evening, and I read in her
  • animated and gratified countenance that he succeeded in making himself
  • perfectly agreeable. The mamma too (a stout person in a turban--Mrs.
  • Lupton by name) looked well pleased; prophetic visions probably
  • flattered her inward eye. The Hunsdens were of an old stem; and scornful
  • as Yorke (such was my late interlocutor’s name) professed to be of
  • the advantages of birth, in his secret heart he well knew and fully
  • appreciated the distinction his ancient, if not high lineage conferred
  • on him in a mushroom-place like X----, concerning whose inhabitants
  • it was proverbially said, that not one in a thousand knew his own
  • grandfather. Moreover the Hunsdens, once rich, were still independent;
  • and report affirmed that Yorke bade fair, by his success in business,
  • to restore to pristine prosperity the partially decayed fortunes of his
  • house. These circumstances considered, Mrs. Lupton’s broad face might
  • well wear a smile of complacency as she contemplated the heir of Hunsden
  • Wood occupied in paying assiduous court to her darling Sarah Martha. I,
  • however, whose observations being less anxious, were likely to be more
  • accurate, soon saw that the grounds for maternal self-congratulation
  • were slight indeed; the gentleman appeared to me much more desirous of
  • making, than susceptible of receiving an impression. I know not what it
  • was in Mr. Hunsden that, as I watched him (I had nothing better to do),
  • suggested to me, every now and then, the idea of a foreigner. In form
  • and features he might be pronounced English, though even there one
  • caught a dash of something Gallic; but he had no English shyness: he had
  • learnt somewhere, somehow, the art of setting himself quite at his ease,
  • and of allowing no insular timidity to intervene as a barrier between
  • him and his convenience or pleasure. Refinement he did not affect, yet
  • vulgar he could not be called; he was not odd--no quiz--yet he resembled
  • no one else I had ever seen before; his general bearing intimated
  • complete, sovereign satisfaction with himself; yet, at times, an
  • indescribable shade passed like an eclipse over his countenance, and
  • seemed to me like the sign of a sudden and strong inward doubt of
  • himself, his words and actions an energetic discontent at his life or
  • his social position, his future prospects or his mental attainments--I
  • know not which; perhaps after all it might only be a bilious caprice.
  • CHAPTER IV.
  • No man likes to acknowledge that he has made a mistake in the choice of
  • his profession, and every man, worthy of the name, will row long against
  • wind and tide before he allows himself to cry out, “I am baffled!” and
  • submits to be floated passively back to land. From the first week of my
  • residence in X---- I felt my occupation irksome. The thing itself--the
  • work of copying and translating business-letters--was a dry and tedious
  • task enough, but had that been all, I should long have borne with the
  • nuisance; I am not of an impatient nature, and influenced by the double
  • desire of getting my living and justifying to myself and others the
  • resolution I had taken to become a tradesman, I should have endured
  • in silence the rust and cramp of my best faculties; I should not have
  • whispered, even inwardly, that I longed for liberty; I should have pent
  • in every sigh by which my heart might have ventured to intimate its
  • distress under the closeness, smoke, monotony and joyless tumult of
  • Bigben Close, and its panting desire for freer and fresher scenes; I
  • should have set up the image of Duty, the fetish of Perseverance, in my
  • small bedroom at Mrs. King’s lodgings, and they two should have been
  • my household gods, from which my darling, my cherished-in-secret,
  • Imagination, the tender and the mighty, should never, either by softness
  • or strength, have severed me. But this was not all; the antipathy which
  • had sprung up between myself and my employer striking deeper root and
  • spreading denser shade daily, excluded me from every glimpse of the
  • sunshine of life; and I began to feel like a plant growing in humid
  • darkness out of the slimy walls of a well.
  • Antipathy is the only word which can express the feeling Edward
  • Crimsworth had for me--a feeling, in a great measure, involuntary, and
  • which was liable to be excited by every, the most trifling movement,
  • look, or word of mine. My southern accent annoyed him; the degree
  • of education evinced in my language irritated him; my punctuality,
  • industry, and accuracy, fixed his dislike, and gave it the high flavour
  • and poignant relish of envy; he feared that I too should one day make a
  • successful tradesman. Had I been in anything inferior to him, he would
  • not have hated me so thoroughly, but I knew all that he knew, and, what
  • was worse, he suspected that I kept the padlock of silence on mental
  • wealth in which he was no sharer. If he could have once placed me in a
  • ridiculous or mortifying position, he would have forgiven me much, but I
  • was guarded by three faculties--Caution, Tact, Observation; and
  • prowling and prying as was Edward’s malignity, it could never baffle
  • the lynx-eyes of these, my natural sentinels. Day by day did his malice
  • watch my tact, hoping it would sleep, and prepared to steal snake-like
  • on its slumber; but tact, if it be genuine, never sleeps.
  • I had received my first quarter’s wages, and was returning to my
  • lodgings, possessed heart and soul with the pleasant feeling that
  • the master who had paid me grudged every penny of that hard-earned
  • pittance--(I had long ceased to regard Mr. Crimsworth as my brother--he
  • was a hard, grinding master; he wished to be an inexorable tyrant: that
  • was all). Thoughts, not varied but strong, occupied my mind; two voices
  • spoke within me; again and again they uttered the same monotonous
  • phrases. One said: “William, your life is intolerable.” The other: “What
  • can you do to alter it?” I walked fast, for it was a cold, frosty night
  • in January; as I approached my lodgings, I turned from a general view of
  • my affairs to the particular speculation as to whether my fire would be
  • out; looking towards the window of my sitting-room, I saw no cheering
  • red gleam.
  • “That slut of a servant has neglected it as usual,” said I, “and I shall
  • see nothing but pale ashes if I go in; it is a fine starlight night--I
  • will walk a little farther.”
  • It WAS a fine night, and the streets were dry and even clean for X----;
  • there was a crescent curve of moonlight to be seen by the parish church
  • tower, and hundreds of stars shone keenly bright in all quarters of the
  • sky.
  • Unconsciously I steered my course towards the country; I had got into
  • Grove-street, and began to feel the pleasure of seeing dim trees at the
  • extremity, round a suburban house, when a person leaning over the iron
  • gate of one of the small gardens which front the neat dwelling-houses in
  • this street, addressed me as I was hurrying with quick stride past.
  • “What the deuce is the hurry? Just so must Lot have left Sodom, when he
  • expected fire to pour down upon it, out of burning brass clouds.”
  • I stopped short, and looked towards the speaker. I smelt the fragrance,
  • and saw the red spark of a cigar; the dusk outline of a man, too, bent
  • towards me over the wicket.
  • “You see I am meditating in the field at eventide,” continued this
  • shade. “God knows it’s cool work! especially as instead of Rebecca on
  • a camel’s hump, with bracelets on her arms and a ring in her nose, Fate
  • sends me only a counting-house clerk, in a grey tweed wrapper.” The
  • voice was familiar to me--its second utterance enabled me to seize the
  • speaker’s identity.
  • “Mr. Hunsden! good evening.”
  • “Good evening, indeed! yes, but you would have passed me without
  • recognition if I had not been so civil as to speak first.”
  • “I did not know you.”
  • “A famous excuse! You ought to have known me; I knew you, though you
  • were going ahead like a steam-engine. Are the police after you?”
  • “It wouldn’t be worth their while; I’m not of consequence enough to
  • attract them.”
  • “Alas, poor shepherd! Alack and well-a-day! What a theme for regret, and
  • how down in the mouth you must be, judging from the sound of your voice!
  • But since you’re not running from the police, from whom are you running?
  • the devil?”
  • “On the contrary, I am going post to him.”
  • “That is well--you’re just in luck: this is Tuesday evening; there are
  • scores of market gigs and carts returning to Dinneford to-night; and he,
  • or some of his, have a seat in all regularly; so, if you’ll step in
  • and sit half-an-hour in my bachelor’s parlour, you may catch him as he
  • passes without much trouble. I think though you’d better let him alone
  • to-night, he’ll have so many customers to serve; Tuesday is his busy day
  • in X---- and Dinneford; come in at all events.”
  • He swung the wicket open as he spoke.
  • “Do you really wish me to go in?” I asked.
  • “As you please--I’m alone; your company for an hour or two would be
  • agreeable to me; but, if you don’t choose to favour me so far, I’ll not
  • press the point. I hate to bore any one.”
  • It suited me to accept the invitation as it suited Hunsden to give it.
  • I passed through the gate, and followed him to the front door, which he
  • opened; thence we traversed a passage, and entered his parlour; the door
  • being shut, he pointed me to an arm-chair by the hearth; I sat down, and
  • glanced round me.
  • It was a comfortable room, at once snug and handsome; the bright grate
  • was filled with a genuine ----shire fire, red, clear, and generous, no
  • penurious South-of-England embers heaped in the corner of a grate. On
  • the table a shaded lamp diffused around a soft, pleasant, and equal
  • light; the furniture was almost luxurious for a young bachelor,
  • comprising a couch and two very easy chairs; bookshelves filled the
  • recesses on each side of the mantelpiece; they were well-furnished, and
  • arranged with perfect order. The neatness of the room suited my taste;
  • I hate irregular and slovenly habits. From what I saw I concluded that
  • Hunsden’s ideas on that point corresponded with my own. While he removed
  • from the centre-table to the side-board a few pamphlets and periodicals,
  • I ran my eye along the shelves of the book-case nearest me. French and
  • German works predominated, the old French dramatists, sundry modern
  • authors, Thiers, Villemain, Paul de Kock, George Sand, Eugene Sue; in
  • German--Goethe, Schiller, Zschokke, Jean Paul Richter; in English there
  • were works on Political Economy. I examined no further, for Mr. Hunsden
  • himself recalled my attention.
  • “You shall have something,” said he, “for you ought to feel disposed for
  • refreshment after walking nobody knows how far on such a Canadian night
  • as this; but it shall not be brandy-and-water, and it shall not be
  • a bottle of port, nor ditto of sherry. I keep no such poison. I have
  • Rhein-wein for my own drinking, and you may choose between that and
  • coffee.”
  • Here again Hunsden suited me: if there was one generally received
  • practice I abhorred more than another, it was the habitual imbibing of
  • spirits and strong wines. I had, however, no fancy for his acid German
  • nectar, but I liked coffee, so I responded--
  • “Give me some coffee, Mr. Hunsden.”
  • I perceived my answer pleased him; he had doubtless expected to see a
  • chilling effect produced by his steady announcement that he would give
  • me neither wine nor spirits; he just shot one searching glance at my
  • face to ascertain whether my cordiality was genuine or a mere feint
  • of politeness. I smiled, because I quite understood him; and, while I
  • honoured his conscientious firmness, I was amused at his mistrust; he
  • seemed satisfied, rang the bell, and ordered coffee, which was presently
  • brought; for himself, a bunch of grapes and half a pint of something
  • sour sufficed. My coffee was excellent; I told him so, and expressed the
  • shuddering pity with which his anchorite fare inspired me. He did not
  • answer, and I scarcely think heard my remark. At that moment one of
  • those momentary eclipses I before alluded to had come over his face,
  • extinguishing his smile, and replacing, by an abstracted and alienated
  • look, the customarily shrewd, bantering glance of his eye. I employed
  • the interval of silence in a rapid scrutiny of his physiognomy. I had
  • never observed him closely before; and, as my sight is very short, I had
  • gathered only a vague, general idea of his appearance; I was surprised
  • now, on examination, to perceive how small, and even feminine, were his
  • lineaments; his tall figure, long and dark locks, his voice and general
  • bearing, had impressed me with the notion of something powerful and
  • massive; not at all:--my own features were cast in a harsher and squarer
  • mould than his. I discerned that there would be contrasts between his
  • inward and outward man; contentions, too; for I suspected his soul
  • had more of will and ambition than his body had of fibre and muscle.
  • Perhaps, in these incompatibilities of the “physique” with the “morale,”
  • lay the secret of that fitful gloom; he WOULD but COULD not, and the
  • athletic mind scowled scorn on its more fragile companion. As to his
  • good looks, I should have liked to have a woman’s opinion on that
  • subject; it seemed to me that his face might produce the same effect
  • on a lady that a very piquant and interesting, though scarcely pretty,
  • female face would on a man. I have mentioned his dark locks--they were
  • brushed sideways above a white and sufficiently expansive forehead; his
  • cheek had a rather hectic freshness; his features might have done well
  • on canvas, but indifferently in marble: they were plastic; character
  • had set a stamp upon each; expression re-cast them at her pleasure, and
  • strange metamorphoses she wrought, giving him now the mien of a morose
  • bull, and anon that of an arch and mischievous girl; more frequently,
  • the two semblances were blent, and a queer, composite countenance they
  • made.
  • Starting from his silent fit, he began:--
  • “William! what a fool you are to live in those dismal lodgings of Mrs.
  • King’s, when you might take rooms here in Grove Street, and have a
  • garden like me!”
  • “I should be too far from the mill.”
  • “What of that? It would do you good to walk there and back two or three
  • times a day; besides, are you such a fossil that you never wish to see a
  • flower or a green leaf?”
  • “I am no fossil.”
  • “What are you then? You sit at that desk in Crimsworth’s counting-house
  • day by day and week by week, scraping with a pen on paper, just like an
  • automaton; you never get up; you never say you are tired; you never ask
  • for a holiday; you never take change or relaxation; you give way to
  • no excess of an evening; you neither keep wild company, nor indulge in
  • strong drink.”
  • “Do you, Mr. Hunsden?”
  • “Don’t think to pose me with short questions; your case and mine
  • are diametrically different, and it is nonsense attempting to draw a
  • parallel. I say, that when a man endures patiently what ought to be
  • unendurable, he is a fossil.”
  • “Whence do you acquire the knowledge of my patience?”
  • “Why, man, do you suppose you are a mystery? The other night you seemed
  • surprised at my knowing to what family you belonged; now you find
  • subject for wonderment in my calling you patient. What do you think I do
  • with my eyes and ears? I’ve been in your counting-house more than once
  • when Crimsworth has treated you like a dog; called for a book, for
  • instance, and when you gave him the wrong one, or what he chose to
  • consider the wrong one, flung it back almost in your face; desired you
  • to shut or open the door as if you had been his flunkey; to say nothing
  • of your position at the party about a month ago, where you had neither
  • place nor partner, but hovered about like a poor, shabby hanger-on; and
  • how patient you were under each and all of these circumstances!”
  • “Well, Mr. Hunsden, what then?”
  • “I can hardly tell you what then; the conclusion to be drawn as to
  • your character depends upon the nature of the motives which guide
  • your conduct; if you are patient because you expect to make something
  • eventually out of Crimsworth, notwithstanding his tyranny, or perhaps by
  • means of it, you are what the world calls an interested and mercenary,
  • but may be a very wise fellow; if you are patient because you think it a
  • duty to meet insult with submission, you are an essential sap, and in
  • no shape the man for my money; if you are patient because your nature is
  • phlegmatic, flat, inexcitable, and that you cannot get up to the pitch
  • of resistance, why, God made you to be crushed; and lie down by all
  • means, and lie flat, and let Juggernaut ride well over you.”
  • Mr. Hunsden’s eloquence was not, it will be perceived, of the smooth and
  • oily order. As he spoke, he pleased me ill. I seem to recognize in him
  • one of those characters who, sensitive enough themselves, are selfishly
  • relentless towards the sensitiveness of others. Moreover, though he
  • was neither like Crimsworth nor Lord Tynedale, yet he was acrid, and, I
  • suspected, overbearing in his way: there was a tone of despotism in
  • the urgency of the very reproaches by which he aimed at goading the
  • oppressed into rebellion against the oppressor. Looking at him still
  • more fixedly than I had yet done, I saw written in his eye and mien a
  • resolution to arrogate to himself a freedom so unlimited that it might
  • often trench on the just liberty of his neighbours. I rapidly ran over
  • these thoughts, and then I laughed a low and involuntary laugh, moved
  • thereto by a slight inward revelation of the inconsistency of man.
  • It was as I thought: Hunsden had expected me to take with calm his
  • incorrect and offensive surmises, his bitter and haughty taunts; and
  • himself was chafed by a laugh, scarce louder than a whisper.
  • His brow darkened, his thin nostril dilated a little.
  • “Yes,” he began, “I told you that you were an aristocrat, and who but
  • an aristocrat would laugh such a laugh as that, and look such a look?
  • A laugh frigidly jeering; a look lazily mutinous; gentlemanlike irony,
  • patrician resentment. What a nobleman you would have made, William
  • Crimsworth! You are cut out for one; pity Fortune has baulked Nature!
  • Look at the features, figure, even to the hands--distinction all
  • over--ugly distinction! Now, if you’d only an estate and a mansion,
  • and a park, and a title, how you could play the exclusive, maintain the
  • rights of your class, train your tenantry in habits of respect to the
  • peerage, oppose at every step the advancing power of the people, support
  • your rotten order, and be ready for its sake to wade knee-deep in
  • churls’ blood; as it is, you’ve no power; you can do nothing; you’re
  • wrecked and stranded on the shores of commerce; forced into collision
  • with practical men, with whom you cannot cope, for YOU’LL NEVER BE A
  • TRADESMAN.”
  • The first part of Hunsden’s speech moved me not at all, or, if it did,
  • it was only to wonder at the perversion into which prejudice had twisted
  • his judgment of my character; the concluding sentence, however, not only
  • moved, but shook me; the blow it gave was a severe one, because Truth
  • wielded the weapon. If I smiled now, it, was only in disdain of myself.
  • Hunsden saw his advantage; he followed it up.
  • “You’ll make nothing by trade,” continued he; “nothing more than the
  • crust of dry bread and the draught of fair water on which you now live;
  • your only chance of getting a competency lies in marrying a rich widow,
  • or running away with an heiress.”
  • “I leave such shifts to be put in practice by those who devise them,”
  • said I, rising.
  • “And even that is hopeless,” he went on coolly. “What widow would have
  • you? Much less, what heiress? You’re not bold and venturesome enough for
  • the one, nor handsome and fascinating enough for the other. You think
  • perhaps you look intelligent and polished; carry your intellect and
  • refinement to market, and tell me in a private note what price is bid
  • for them.”
  • Mr. Hunsden had taken his tone for the night; the string he struck was
  • out of tune, he would finger no other. Averse to discord, of which I had
  • enough every day and all day long, I concluded, at last, that silence
  • and solitude were preferable to jarring converse; I bade him good-night.
  • “What! Are you going, lad? Well, good-night: you’ll find the door.” And
  • he sat still in front of the fire, while I left the room and the house.
  • I had got a good way on my return to my lodgings before I found out that
  • I was walking very fast, and breathing very hard, and that my nails were
  • almost stuck into the palms of my clenched hands, and that my teeth were
  • set fast; on making this discovery, I relaxed both my pace, fists, and
  • jaws, but I could not so soon cause the regrets rushing rapidly through
  • my mind to slacken their tide. Why did I make myself a tradesman? Why
  • did I enter Hunsden’s house this evening? Why, at dawn to-morrow, must
  • I repair to Crimsworth’s mill? All that night did I ask myself these
  • questions, and all that night fiercely demanded of my soul an answer. I
  • got no sleep; my head burned, my feet froze; at last the factory bells
  • rang, and I sprang from my bed with other slaves.
  • CHAPTER V.
  • THERE is a climax to everything, to every state of feeling as well as to
  • every position in life. I turned this truism over in my mind as, in the
  • frosty dawn of a January morning, I hurried down the steep and now
  • icy street which descended from Mrs. King’s to the Close. The factory
  • workpeople had preceded me by nearly an hour, and the mill was all
  • lighted up and in full operation when I reached it. I repaired to my
  • post in the counting-house as usual; the fire there, but just lit, as
  • yet only smoked; Steighton had not yet arrived. I shut the door and sat
  • down at the desk; my hands, recently washed in half-frozen water, were
  • still numb; I could not write till they had regained vitality, so I
  • went on thinking, and still the theme of my thoughts was the “climax.”
  • Self-dissatisfaction troubled exceedingly the current of my meditations.
  • “Come, William Crimsworth,” said my conscience, or whatever it is that
  • within ourselves takes ourselves to task--“come, get a clear notion of
  • what you would have, or what you would not have. You talk of a climax;
  • pray has your endurance reached its climax? It is not four months old.
  • What a fine resolute fellow you imagined yourself to be when you told
  • Tynedale you would tread in your father’s steps, and a pretty treading
  • you are likely to make of it! How well you like X----! Just at this
  • moment how redolent of pleasant associations are its streets, its shops,
  • its warehouses, its factories! How the prospect of this day cheers
  • you! Letter-copying till noon, solitary dinner at your lodgings,
  • letter-copying till evening, solitude; for you neither find pleasure
  • in Brown’s, nor Smith’s, nor Nicholl’s, nor Eccle’s company; and as
  • to Hunsden, you fancied there was pleasure to be derived from his
  • society--he! he! how did you like the taste you had of him last night?
  • was it sweet? Yet he is a talented, an original-minded man, and even
  • he does not like you; your self-respect defies you to like him; he has
  • always seen you to disadvantage; he always will see you to disadvantage;
  • your positions are unequal, and were they on the same level your
  • minds could not assimilate; never hope, then, to gather the honey of
  • friendship out of that thorn-guarded plant. Hello, Crimsworth! where are
  • your thoughts tending? You leave the recollection of Hunsden as a bee
  • would a rock, as a bird a desert; and your aspirations spread eager
  • wings towards a land of visions where, now in advancing daylight--in
  • X---- daylight--you dare to dream of congeniality, repose, union. Those
  • three you will never meet in this world; they are angels. The souls of
  • just men made perfect may encounter them in heaven, but your soul will
  • never be made perfect. Eight o’clock strikes! your hands are thawed, get
  • to work!”
  • “Work? why should I work?” said I sullenly: “I cannot please though I
  • toil like a slave.” “Work, work!” reiterated the inward voice. “I may
  • work, it will do no good,” I growled; but nevertheless I drew out a
  • packet of letters and commenced my task--task thankless and bitter as
  • that of the Israelite crawling over the sun-baked fields of Egypt in
  • search of straw and stubble wherewith to accomplish his tale of bricks.
  • About ten o’clock I heard Mr. Crimsworth’s gig turn into the yard, and
  • in a minute or two he entered the counting-house. It was his custom to
  • glance his eye at Steighton and myself, to hang up his mackintosh, stand
  • a minute with his back to the fire, and then walk out. Today he did
  • not deviate from his usual habits; the only difference was that when
  • he looked at me, his brow, instead of being merely hard, was surly; his
  • eye, instead of being cold, was fierce. He studied me a minute or two
  • longer than usual, but went out in silence.
  • Twelve o’clock arrived; the bell rang for a suspension of labour; the
  • workpeople went off to their dinners; Steighton, too, departed, desiring
  • me to lock the counting-house door, and take the key with me. I
  • was tying up a bundle of papers, and putting them in their place,
  • preparatory to closing my desk, when Crimsworth reappeared at the door,
  • and entering closed it behind him.
  • “You’ll stay here a minute,” said he, in a deep, brutal voice, while his
  • nostrils distended and his eye shot a spark of sinister fire.
  • Alone with Edward I remembered our relationship, and remembering that
  • forgot the difference of position; I put away deference and careful
  • forms of speech; I answered with simple brevity.
  • “It is time to go home,” I said, turning the key in my desk.
  • “You’ll stay here!” he reiterated. “And take your hand off that key!
  • leave it in the lock!”
  • “Why?” asked I. “What cause is there for changing my usual plans?”
  • “Do as I order,” was the answer, “and no questions! You are my servant,
  • obey me! What have you been about--?” He was going on in the same
  • breath, when an abrupt pause announced that rage had for the moment got
  • the better of articulation.
  • “You may look, if you wish to know,” I replied. “There is the open desk,
  • there are the papers.”
  • “Confound your insolence! What have you been about?”
  • “Your work, and have done it well.”
  • “Hypocrite and twaddler! Smooth-faced, snivelling greasehorn!” (This
  • last term is, I believe, purely ----shire, and alludes to the horn of
  • black, rancid whale-oil, usually to be seen suspended to cart-wheels,
  • and employed for greasing the same.)
  • “Come, Edward Crimsworth, enough of this. It is time you and I wound up
  • accounts. I have now given your service three months’ trial, and I find
  • it the most nauseous slavery under the sun. Seek another clerk. I stay
  • no longer.”
  • “What! do you dare to give me notice? Stop at least for your wages.” He
  • took down the heavy gig whip hanging beside his mackintosh.
  • I permitted myself to laugh with a degree of scorn I took no pains to
  • temper or hide. His fury boiled up, and when he had sworn half-a-dozen
  • vulgar, impious oaths, without, however, venturing to lift the whip, he
  • continued:
  • “I’ve found you out and know you thoroughly, you mean, whining
  • lickspittle! What have you been saying all over X---- about me? answer
  • me that!”
  • “You? I have neither inclination nor temptation to talk about you.”
  • “You lie! It is your practice to talk about me; it is your constant
  • habit to make public complaint of the treatment you receive at my hands.
  • You have gone and told it far and near that I give you low wages and
  • knock you about like a dog. I wish you were a dog! I’d set-to this
  • minute, and never stir from the spot till I’d cut every strip of flesh
  • from your bones with this whip.”
  • He flourished his tool. The end of the lash just touched my forehead.
  • A warm excited thrill ran through my veins, my blood seemed to give a
  • bound, and then raced fast and hot along its channels. I got up nimbly,
  • came round to where he stood, and faced him.
  • “Down with your whip!” said I, “and explain this instant what you mean.”
  • “Sirrah! to whom are you speaking?”
  • “To you. There is no one else present, I think. You say I have been
  • calumniating you--complaining of your low wages and bad treatment. Give
  • your grounds for these assertions.”
  • Crimsworth had no dignity, and when I sternly demanded an explanation,
  • he gave one in a loud, scolding voice.
  • “Grounds! you shall have them; and turn to the light that I may see your
  • brazen face blush black, when you hear yourself proved to be a liar and
  • a hypocrite. At a public meeting in the Town-hall yesterday, I had the
  • pleasure of hearing myself insulted by the speaker opposed to me in the
  • question under discussion, by allusions to my private affairs; by cant
  • about monsters without natural affection, family despots, and such
  • trash; and when I rose to answer, I was met by a shout from the filthy
  • mob, where the mention of your name enabled me at once to detect the
  • quarter in which this base attack had originated. When I looked round, I
  • saw that treacherous villain, Hunsden acting as fugleman. I detected you
  • in close conversation with Hunsden at my house a month ago, and I know
  • that you were at Hunsden’s rooms last night. Deny it if you dare.”
  • “Oh, I shall not deny it! And if Hunsden hounded on the people to hiss
  • you, he did quite right. You deserve popular execration; for a worse
  • man, a harder master, a more brutal brother than you are has seldom
  • existed.”
  • “Sirrah! sirrah!” reiterated Crimsworth; and to complete his apostrophe,
  • he cracked the whip straight over my head.
  • A minute sufficed to wrest it from him, break it in two pieces, and
  • throw it under the grate. He made a headlong rush at me, which I evaded,
  • and said--
  • “Touch me, and I’ll have you up before the nearest magistrate.”
  • Men like Crimsworth, if firmly and calmly resisted, always abate
  • something of their exorbitant insolence; he had no mind to be brought
  • before a magistrate, and I suppose he saw I meant what I said. After
  • an odd and long stare at me, at once bull-like and amazed, he seemed
  • to bethink himself that, after all, his money gave him sufficient
  • superiority over a beggar like me, and that he had in his hands a surer
  • and more dignified mode of revenge than the somewhat hazardous one of
  • personal chastisement.
  • “Take your hat,” said he. “Take what belongs to you, and go out at
  • that door; get away to your parish, you pauper: beg, steal, starve, get
  • transported, do what you like; but at your peril venture again into
  • my sight! If ever I hear of your setting foot on an inch of ground
  • belonging to me, I’ll hire a man to cane you.”
  • “It is not likely you’ll have the chance; once off your premises, what
  • temptation can I have to return to them? I leave a prison, I leave a
  • tyrant; I leave what is worse than the worst that can lie before me, so
  • no fear of my coming back.”
  • “Go, or I’ll make you!” exclaimed Crimsworth.
  • I walked deliberately to my desk, took out such of its contents as were
  • my own property, put them in my pocket, locked the desk, and placed the
  • key on the top.
  • “What are you abstracting from that desk?” demanded the millowner.
  • “Leave all behind in its place, or I’ll send for a policeman to search
  • you.”
  • “Look sharp about it, then,” said I, and I took down my hat, drew on my
  • gloves, and walked leisurely out of the counting-house--walked out of it
  • to enter it no more.
  • I recollect that when the mill-bell rang the dinner hour, before Mr.
  • Crimsworth entered, and the scene above related took place, I had had
  • rather a sharp appetite, and had been waiting somewhat impatiently to
  • hear the signal of feeding time. I forgot it now, however; the images
  • of potatoes and roast mutton were effaced from my mind by the stir and
  • tumult which the transaction of the last half-hour had there excited. I
  • only thought of walking, that the action of my muscles might harmonize
  • with the action of my nerves; and walk I did, fast and far. How could
  • I do otherwise? A load was lifted off my heart; I felt light and
  • liberated. I had got away from Bigben Close without a breach of
  • resolution; without injury to my self-respect. I had not forced
  • circumstances; circumstances had freed me. Life was again open to me;
  • no longer was its horizon limited by the high black wall surrounding
  • Crimsworth’s mill. Two hours had elapsed before my sensations had so far
  • subsided as to leave me calm enough to remark for what wider and clearer
  • boundaries I had exchanged that sooty girdle. When I did look up, lo!
  • straight before me lay Grovetown, a village of villas about five miles
  • out of X----. The short winter day, as I perceived from the far-declined
  • sun, was already approaching its close; a chill frost-mist was rising
  • from the river on which X---- stands, and along whose banks the road I
  • had taken lay; it dimmed the earth, but did not obscure the clear icy
  • blue of the January sky. There was a great stillness near and far; the
  • time of the day favoured tranquillity, as the people were all employed
  • within-doors, the hour of evening release from the factories not being
  • yet arrived; a sound of full-flowing water alone pervaded the air, for
  • the river was deep and abundant, swelled by the melting of a late snow.
  • I stood awhile, leaning over a wall; and looking down at the current:
  • I watched the rapid rush of its waves. I desired memory to take a clear
  • and permanent impression of the scene, and treasure it for future years.
  • Grovetown church clock struck four; looking up, I beheld the last of
  • that day’s sun, glinting red through the leafless boughs of some
  • very old oak trees surrounding the church--its light coloured and
  • characterized the picture as I wished. I paused yet a moment, till the
  • sweet, slow sound of the bell had quite died out of the air; then ear,
  • eye and feeling satisfied, I quitted the wall and once more turned my
  • face towards X----.
  • CHAPTER VI.
  • I RE-ENTERED the town a hungry man; the dinner I had forgotten recurred
  • seductively to my recollection; and it was with a quick step and sharp
  • appetite I ascended the narrow street leading to my lodgings. It was
  • dark when I opened the front door and walked into the house. I wondered
  • how my fire would be; the night was cold, and I shuddered at the
  • prospect of a grate full of sparkless cinders. To my joyful surprise,
  • I found, on entering my sitting-room, a good fire and a clean hearth.
  • I had hardly noticed this phenomenon, when I became aware of another
  • subject for wonderment; the chair I usually occupied near the hearth was
  • already filled; a person sat there with his arms folded on his chest,
  • and his legs stretched out on the rug. Short-sighted as I am, doubtful
  • as was the gleam of the firelight, a moment’s examination enabled me to
  • recognize in this person my acquaintance, Mr. Hunsden. I could not of
  • course be much pleased to see him, considering the manner in which I had
  • parted from him the night before, and as I walked to the hearth, stirred
  • the fire, and said coolly, “Good evening,” my demeanour evinced as
  • little cordiality as I felt; yet I wondered in my own mind what had
  • brought him there; and I wondered, also, what motives had induced him to
  • interfere so actively between me and Edward; it was to him, it appeared,
  • that I owed my welcome dismissal; still I could not bring myself to
  • ask him questions, to show any eagerness of curiosity; if he chose to
  • explain, he might, but the explanation should be a perfectly voluntary
  • one on his part; I thought he was entering upon it.
  • “You owe me a debt of gratitude,” were his first words.
  • “Do I?” said I; “I hope it is not a large one, for I am much too poor to
  • charge myself with heavy liabilities of any kind.”
  • “Then declare yourself bankrupt at once, for this liability is a ton
  • weight at least. When I came in I found your fire out, and I had it lit
  • again, and made that sulky drab of a servant stay and blow at it with
  • the bellows till it had burnt up properly; now, say ‘Thank you!’”
  • “Not till I have had something to eat; I can thank nobody while I am so
  • famished.”
  • I rang the bell and ordered tea and some cold meat.
  • “Cold meat!” exclaimed Hunsden, as the servant closed the door, “what a
  • glutton you are; man! Meat with tea! you’ll die of eating too much.”
  • “No, Mr. Hunsden, I shall not.” I felt a necessity for contradicting
  • him; I was irritated with hunger, and irritated at seeing him there, and
  • irritated at the continued roughness of his manner.
  • “It is over-eating that makes you so ill-tempered,” said he.
  • “How do you know?” I demanded. “It is like you to give a pragmatical
  • opinion without being acquainted with any of the circumstances of the
  • case; I have had no dinner.”
  • What I said was petulant and snappish enough, and Hunsden only replied
  • by looking in my face and laughing.
  • “Poor thing!” he whined, after a pause. “It has had no dinner, has it?
  • What! I suppose its master would not let it come home. Did Crimsworth
  • order you to fast by way of punishment, William!”
  • “No, Mr. Hunsden.” Fortunately at this sulky juncture, tea, was brought
  • in, and I fell to upon some bread and butter and cold beef directly.
  • Having cleared a plateful, I became so far humanized as to intimate to
  • Mr. Hunsden that he need not sit there staring, but might come to the
  • table and do as I did, if he liked.
  • “But I don’t like in the least,” said he, and therewith he summoned the
  • servant by a fresh pull of the bell-rope, and intimated a desire to
  • have a glass of toast-and-water. “And some more coal,” he added; “Mr.
  • Crimsworth shall keep a good fire while I stay.”
  • His orders being executed, he wheeled his chair round to the table, so
  • as to be opposite me.
  • “Well,” he proceeded. “You are out of work, I suppose.”
  • “Yes,” said I; and not disposed to show the satisfaction I felt on this
  • point, I, yielding to the whim of the moment, took up the subject as
  • though I considered myself aggrieved rather than benefited by what had
  • been done. “Yes--thanks to you, I am. Crimsworth turned me off at
  • a minute’s notice, owing to some interference of yours at a public
  • meeting, I understand.”
  • “Ah! what! he mentioned that? He observed me signalling the lads, did
  • he? What had he to say about his friend Hunsden--anything sweet?”
  • “He called you a treacherous villain.”
  • “Oh, he hardly knows me yet! I’m one of those shy people who don’t come
  • out all at once, and he is only just beginning to make my acquaintance,
  • but he’ll find I’ve some good qualities--excellent ones! The Hunsdens
  • were always unrivalled at tracking a rascal; a downright, dishonourable
  • villain is their natural prey--they could not keep off him wherever
  • they met him; you used the word pragmatical just now--that word is the
  • property of our family; it has been applied to us from generation to
  • generation; we have fine noses for abuses; we scent a scoundrel a mile
  • off; we are reformers born, radical reformers; and it was impossible for
  • me to live in the same town with Crimsworth, to come into weekly contact
  • with him, to witness some of his conduct to you (for whom personally
  • I care nothing; I only consider the brutal injustice with which he
  • violated your natural claim to equality)--I say it was impossible for
  • me to be thus situated and not feel the angel or the demon of my race
  • at work within me. I followed my instinct, opposed a tyrant, and broke a
  • chain.”
  • Now this speech interested me much, both because it brought out
  • Hunsden’s character, and because it explained his motives; it interested
  • me so much that I forgot to reply to it, and sat silent, pondering over
  • a throng of ideas it had suggested.
  • “Are you grateful to me?” he asked, presently.
  • In fact I was grateful, or almost so, and I believe I half liked him at
  • the moment, notwithstanding his proviso that what he had done was not
  • out of regard for me. But human nature is perverse. Impossible to answer
  • his blunt question in the affirmative, so I disclaimed all tendency
  • to gratitude, and advised him if he expected any reward for his
  • championship, to look for it in a better world, as he was not likely
  • to meet with it here. In reply he termed me “a dry-hearted aristocratic
  • scamp,” whereupon I again charged him with having taken the bread out of
  • my mouth.
  • “Your bread was dirty, man!” cried Hunsden--“dirty and unwholesome!
  • It came through the hands of a tyrant, for I tell you Crimsworth is a
  • tyrant,--a tyrant to his workpeople, a tyrant to his clerks, and will
  • some day be a tyrant to his wife.”
  • “Nonsense! bread is bread, and a salary is a salary. I’ve lost mine, and
  • through your means.”
  • “There’s sense in what you say, after all,” rejoined Hunsden. “I must
  • say I am rather agreeably surprised to hear you make so practical
  • an observation as that last. I had imagined now, from my previous
  • observation of your character, that the sentimental delight you would
  • have taken in your newly regained liberty would, for a while at least,
  • have effaced all ideas of forethought and prudence. I think better of
  • you for looking steadily to the needful.”
  • “Looking steadily to the needful! How can I do otherwise? I must live,
  • and to live I must have what you call ‘the needful,’ which I can only
  • get by working. I repeat it, you have taken my work from me.”
  • “What do you mean to do?” pursued Hunsden coolly. “You have influential
  • relations; I suppose they’ll soon provide you with another place.”
  • “Influential relations? Who? I should like to know their names.”
  • “The Seacombes.”
  • “Stuff! I have cut them.”
  • Hunsden looked at me incredulously.
  • “I have,” said I, “and that definitively.”
  • “You must mean they have cut you, William.”
  • “As you please. They offered me their patronage on condition of my
  • entering the Church; I declined both the terms and the recompence; I
  • withdrew from my cold uncles, and preferred throwing myself into my
  • elder brother’s arms, from whose affectionate embrace I am now torn by
  • the cruel intermeddling of a stranger--of yourself, in short.”
  • I could not repress a half-smile as I said this; a similar
  • demi-manifestation of feeling appeared at the same moment on Hunsden’s
  • lips.
  • “Oh, I see!” said he, looking into my eyes, and it was evident he did
  • see right down into my heart. Having sat a minute or two with his chin
  • resting on his hand, diligently occupied in the continued perusal of my
  • countenance, he went on:
  • “Seriously, have you then nothing to expect from the Seacombes?”
  • “Yes, rejection and repulsion. Why do you ask me twice? How can hands
  • stained with the ink of a counting-house, soiled with the grease of
  • a wool-warehouse, ever again be permitted to come into contact with
  • aristocratic palms?”
  • “There would be a difficulty, no doubt; still you are such a complete
  • Seacombe in appearance, feature, language, almost manner, I wonder they
  • should disown you.”
  • “They have disowned me; so talk no more about it.”
  • “Do you regret it, William?”
  • “No.”
  • “Why not, lad?”
  • “Because they are not people with whom I could ever have had any
  • sympathy.”
  • “I say you are one of them.”
  • “That merely proves that you know nothing at all about it; I am my
  • mother’s son, but not my uncles’ nephew.”
  • “Still--one of your uncles is a lord, though rather an obscure and not a
  • very wealthy one, and the other a right honourable: you should consider
  • worldly interest.”
  • “Nonsense, Mr. Hunsden. You know or may know that even had I desired to
  • be submissive to my uncles, I could not have stooped with a good enough
  • grace ever to have won their favour. I should have sacrificed my own
  • comfort and not have gained their patronage in return.”
  • “Very likely--so you calculated your wisest plan was to follow your own
  • devices at once?”
  • “Exactly. I must follow my own devices--I must, till the day of my
  • death; because I can neither comprehend, adopt, nor work out those of
  • other people.”
  • Hunsden yawned. “Well,” said he, “in all this, I see but one thing
  • clearly-that is, that the whole affair is no business of mine.” He
  • stretched himself and again yawned. “I wonder what time it is,” he went
  • on: “I have an appointment for seven o’clock.”
  • “Three quarters past six by my watch.”
  • “Well, then I’ll go.” He got up. “You’ll not meddle with trade again?”
  • said he, leaning his elbow on the mantelpiece.
  • “No; I think not.”
  • “You would be a fool if you did. Probably, after all, you’ll think
  • better of your uncles’ proposal and go into the Church.”
  • “A singular regeneration must take place in my whole inner and outer man
  • before I do that. A good clergyman is one of the best of men.”
  • “Indeed! Do you think so?” interrupted Hunsden, scoffingly.
  • “I do, and no mistake. But I have not the peculiar points which go to
  • make a good clergyman; and rather than adopt a profession for which I
  • have no vocation, I would endure extremities of hardship from poverty.”
  • “You’re a mighty difficult customer to suit. You won’t be a tradesman
  • or a parson; you can’t be a lawyer, or a doctor, or a gentleman, because
  • you’ve no money. I’d recommend you to travel.”
  • “What! without money?”
  • “You must travel in search of money, man. You can speak French--with
  • a vile English accent, no doubt--still, you can speak it. Go on to the
  • Continent, and see what will turn up for you there.”
  • “God knows I should like to go!” exclaimed I with involuntary ardour.
  • “Go: what the deuce hinders you? You may get to Brussels, for instance,
  • for five or six pounds, if you know how to manage with economy.”
  • “Necessity would teach me if I didn’t.”
  • “Go, then, and let your wits make a way for you when you get there. I
  • know Brussels almost as well as I know X----, and I am sure it would
  • suit such a one as you better than London.”
  • “But occupation, Mr. Hunsden! I must go where occupation is to be had;
  • and how could I get recommendation, or introduction, or employment at
  • Brussels?”
  • “There speaks the organ of caution. You hate to advance a step before
  • you know every inch of the way. You haven’t a sheet of paper and a
  • pen-and-ink?”
  • “I hope so,” and I produced writing materials with alacrity; for I
  • guessed what he was going to do. He sat down, wrote a few lines, folded,
  • sealed, and addressed a letter, and held it out to me.
  • “There, Prudence, there’s a pioneer to hew down the first rough
  • difficulties of your path. I know well enough, lad, you are not one of
  • those who will run their neck into a noose without seeing how they
  • are to get it out again, and you’re right there. A reckless man is
  • my aversion, and nothing should ever persuade me to meddle with the
  • concerns of such a one. Those who are reckless for themselves are
  • generally ten times more so for their friends.”
  • “This is a letter of introduction, I suppose?” said I, taking the
  • epistle.
  • “Yes. With that in your pocket you will run no risk of finding yourself
  • in a state of absolute destitution, which, I know, you will regard as a
  • degradation--so should I, for that matter. The person to whom you will
  • present it generally has two or three respectable places depending upon
  • his recommendation.”
  • “That will just suit me,” said I.
  • “Well, and where’s your gratitude?” demanded Mr. Hunsden; “don’t you
  • know how to say ‘Thank you?’”
  • “I’ve fifteen pounds and a watch, which my godmother, whom I never saw,
  • gave me eighteen years ago,” was my rather irrelevant answer; and I
  • further avowed myself a happy man, and professed that I did not envy any
  • being in Christendom.
  • “But your gratitude?”
  • “I shall be off presently, Mr. Hunsden--to-morrow, if all be well: I’ll
  • not stay a day longer in X---- than I’m obliged.”
  • “Very good--but it will be decent to make due acknowledgment for the
  • assistance you have received; be quick! It is just going to strike
  • seven: I’m waiting to be thanked.”
  • “Just stand out of the way, will you, Mr. Hunsden: I want a key there is
  • on the corner of the mantelpiece. I’ll pack my portmanteau before I go
  • to bed.”
  • The house clock struck seven.
  • “The lad is a heathen,” said Hunsden, and taking his hat from a
  • sideboard, he left the room, laughing to himself. I had half an
  • inclination to follow him: I really intended to leave X---- the next
  • morning, and should certainly not have another opportunity of bidding
  • him good-bye. The front door banged to.
  • “Let him go,” said I, “we shall meet again some day.”
  • CHAPTER VII.
  • READER, perhaps you were never in Belgium? Haply you don’t know the
  • physiognomy of the country? You have not its lineaments defined upon
  • your memory, as I have them on mine?
  • Three--nay four--pictures line the four-walled cell where are stored for
  • me the records of the past. First, Eton. All in that picture is in far
  • perspective, receding, diminutive; but freshly coloured, green, dewy,
  • with a spring sky, piled with glittering yet showery clouds; for my
  • childhood was not all sunshine--it had its overcast, its cold, its
  • stormy hours. Second, X----, huge, dingy; the canvas cracked and smoked;
  • a yellow sky, sooty clouds; no sun, no azure; the verdure of the suburbs
  • blighted and sullied--a very dreary scene.
  • Third, Belgium; and I will pause before this landscape. As to the
  • fourth, a curtain covers it, which I may hereafter withdraw, or may not,
  • as suits my convenience and capacity. At any rate, for the present it
  • must hang undisturbed. Belgium! name unromantic and unpoetic, yet name
  • that whenever uttered has in my ear a sound, in my heart an echo, such
  • as no other assemblage of syllables, however sweet or classic, can
  • produce. Belgium! I repeat the word, now as I sit alone near midnight.
  • It stirs my world of the past like a summons to resurrection; the graves
  • unclose, the dead are raised; thoughts, feelings, memories that slept,
  • are seen by me ascending from the clouds--haloed most of them--but while
  • I gaze on their vapoury forms, and strive to ascertain definitely their
  • outline, the sound which wakened them dies, and they sink, each and all,
  • like a light wreath of mist, absorbed in the mould, recalled to urns,
  • resealed in monuments. Farewell, luminous phantoms!
  • This is Belgium, reader. Look! don’t call the picture a flat or a dull
  • one--it was neither flat nor dull to me when I first beheld it. When I
  • left Ostend on a mild February morning, and found myself on the road
  • to Brussels, nothing could look vapid to me. My sense of enjoyment
  • possessed an edge whetted to the finest, untouched, keen, exquisite.
  • I was young; I had good health; pleasure and I had never met; no
  • indulgence of hers had enervated or sated one faculty of my nature.
  • Liberty I clasped in my arms for the first time, and the influence of
  • her smile and embrace revived my life like the sun and the west wind.
  • Yes, at that epoch I felt like a morning traveller who doubts not that
  • from the hill he is ascending he shall behold a glorious sunrise; what
  • if the track be strait, steep, and stony? he sees it not; his eyes are
  • fixed on that summit, flushed already, flushed and gilded, and having
  • gained it he is certain of the scene beyond. He knows that the sun will
  • face him, that his chariot is even now coming over the eastern horizon,
  • and that the herald breeze he feels on his cheek is opening for the
  • god’s career a clear, vast path of azure, amidst clouds soft as pearl
  • and warm as flame. Difficulty and toil were to be my lot, but sustained
  • by energy, drawn on by hopes as bright as vague, I deemed such a lot
  • no hardship. I mounted now the hill in shade; there were pebbles,
  • inequalities, briars in my path, but my eyes were fixed on the crimson
  • peak above; my imagination was with the refulgent firmament beyond, and
  • I thought nothing of the stones turning under my feet, or of the thorns
  • scratching my face and hands.
  • I gazed often, and always with delight, from the window of the diligence
  • (these, be it remembered, were not the days of trains and railroads).
  • Well! and what did I see? I will tell you faithfully. Green, reedy
  • swamps; fields fertile but flat, cultivated in patches that made them
  • look like magnified kitchen-gardens; belts of cut trees, formal as
  • pollard willows, skirting the horizon; narrow canals, gliding slow by
  • the road-side; painted Flemish farmhouses; some very dirty hovels; a
  • gray, dead sky; wet road, wet fields, wet house-tops: not a beautiful,
  • scarcely a picturesque object met my eye along the whole route; yet to
  • me, all was beautiful, all was more than picturesque. It continued fair
  • so long as daylight lasted, though the moisture of many preceding damp
  • days had sodden the whole country; as it grew dark, however, the rain
  • recommenced, and it was through streaming and starless darkness my eye
  • caught the first gleam of the lights of Brussels. I saw little of the
  • city but its lights that night. Having alighted from the diligence, a
  • fiacre conveyed me to the Hotel de ----, where I had been advised by a
  • fellow-traveller to put up; having eaten a traveller’s supper, I retired
  • to bed, and slept a traveller’s sleep.
  • Next morning I awoke from prolonged and sound repose with the impression
  • that I was yet in X----, and perceiving it to be broad daylight I
  • started up, imagining that I had overslept myself and should be behind
  • time at the counting-house. The momentary and painful sense of restraint
  • vanished before the revived and reviving consciousness of freedom, as,
  • throwing back the white curtains of my bed, I looked forth into a wide,
  • lofty foreign chamber; how different from the small and dingy, though
  • not uncomfortable, apartment I had occupied for a night or two at a
  • respectable inn in London while waiting for the sailing of the packet!
  • Yet far be it from me to profane the memory of that little dingy room!
  • It, too, is dear to my soul; for there, as I lay in quiet and darkness,
  • I first heard the great bell of St. Paul’s telling London it was
  • midnight, and well do I recall the deep, deliberate tones, so full
  • charged with colossal phlegm and force. From the small, narrow window
  • of that room, I first saw THE dome, looming through a London mist. I
  • suppose the sensations, stirred by those first sounds, first sights, are
  • felt but once; treasure them, Memory; seal them in urns, and keep them
  • in safe niches! Well--I rose. Travellers talk of the apartments in
  • foreign dwellings being bare and uncomfortable; I thought my chamber
  • looked stately and cheerful. It had such large windows--CROISEES that
  • opened like doors, with such broad, clear panes of glass; such a great
  • looking-glass stood on my dressing-table--such a fine mirror glittered
  • over the mantelpiece--the painted floor looked so clean and glossy;
  • when I had dressed and was descending the stairs, the broad marble steps
  • almost awed me, and so did the lofty hall into which they conducted.
  • On the first landing I met a Flemish housemaid: she had wooden shoes, a
  • short red petticoat, a printed cotton bedgown, her face was broad,
  • her physiognomy eminently stupid; when I spoke to her in French, she
  • answered me in Flemish, with an air the reverse of civil; yet I thought
  • her charming; if she was not pretty or polite, she was, I conceived,
  • very picturesque; she reminded me of the female figures in certain Dutch
  • paintings I had seen in other years at Seacombe Hall.
  • I repaired to the public room; that, too, was very large and very lofty,
  • and warmed by a stove; the floor was black, and the stove was black, and
  • most of the furniture was black: yet I never experienced a freer
  • sense of exhilaration than when I sat down at a very long, black table
  • (covered, however, in part by a white cloth), and, having ordered
  • breakfast, began to pour out my coffee from a little black coffee-pot.
  • The stove might be dismal-looking to some eyes, not to mine, but it
  • was indisputably very warm, and there were two gentlemen seated by
  • it talking in French; impossible to follow their rapid utterance, or
  • comprehend much of the purport of what they said--yet French, in the
  • mouths of Frenchmen, or Belgians (I was not then sensible of the horrors
  • of the Belgian accent) was as music to my ears. One of these gentlemen
  • presently discerned me to be an Englishman--no doubt from the fashion in
  • which I addressed the waiter; for I would persist in speaking French in
  • my execrable South-of-England style, though the man understood English.
  • The gentleman, after looking towards me once or twice, politely accosted
  • me in very good English; I remember I wished to God that I could speak
  • French as well; his fluency and correct pronunciation impressed me for
  • the first time with a due notion of the cosmopolitan character of the
  • capital I was in; it was my first experience of that skill in living
  • languages I afterwards found to be so general in Brussels.
  • I lingered over my breakfast as long as I could; while it was there
  • on the table, and while that stranger continued talking to me, I was a
  • free, independent traveller; but at last the things were removed, the
  • two gentlemen left the room; suddenly the illusion ceased, reality and
  • business came back. I, a bondsman just released from the yoke, freed for
  • one week from twenty-one years of constraint, must, of necessity, resume
  • the fetters of dependency. Hardly had I tasted the delight of being
  • without a master when duty issued her stern mandate: “Go forth and seek
  • another service.” I never linger over a painful and necessary task; I
  • never take pleasure before business, it is not in my nature to do so;
  • impossible to enjoy a leisurely walk over the city, though I perceived
  • the morning was very fine, until I had first presented Mr. Hunsden’s
  • letter of introduction, and got fairly on to the track of a new
  • situation. Wrenching my mind from liberty and delight, I seized my hat,
  • and forced my reluctant body out of the Hotel de ---- into the foreign
  • street.
  • It was a fine day, but I would not look at the blue sky or at the
  • stately houses round me; my mind was bent on one thing, finding out “Mr.
  • Brown, Numero --, Rue Royale,” for so my letter was addressed. By dint
  • of inquiry I succeeded; I stood at last at the desired door, knocked,
  • asked for Mr. Brown, and was admitted.
  • Being shown into a small breakfast-room, I found myself in the
  • presence of an elderly gentleman--very grave, business-like, and
  • respectable-looking. I presented Mr. Hunsden’s letter; he received me
  • very civilly. After a little desultory conversation he asked me if there
  • was anything in which his advice or experience could be of use. I said,
  • “Yes,” and then proceeded to tell him that I was not a gentleman of
  • fortune, travelling for pleasure, but an ex-counting-house clerk, who
  • wanted employment of some kind, and that immediately too. He replied
  • that as a friend of Mr. Hunsden’s he would be willing to assist me as
  • well as he could. After some meditation he named a place in a mercantile
  • house at Liege, and another in a bookseller’s shop at Louvain.
  • “Clerk and shopman!” murmured I to myself. “No.” I shook my head. I
  • had tried the high stool; I hated it; I believed there were other
  • occupations that would suit me better; besides I did not wish to leave
  • Brussels.
  • “I know of no place in Brussels,” answered Mr. Brown, “unless indeed you
  • were disposed to turn your attention to teaching. I am acquainted with
  • the director of a large establishment who is in want of a professor of
  • English and Latin.”
  • I thought two minutes, then I seized the idea eagerly.
  • “The very thing, sir!” said I.
  • “But,” asked he, “do you understand French well enough to teach Belgian
  • boys English?”
  • Fortunately I could answer this question in the affirmative;
  • having studied French under a Frenchman, I could speak the language
  • intelligibly though not fluently. I could also read it well, and write
  • it decently.
  • “Then,” pursued Mr. Brown, “I think I can promise you the place, for
  • Monsieur Pelet will not refuse a professor recommended by me; but come
  • here again at five o’clock this afternoon, and I will introduce you to
  • him.”
  • The word “professor” struck me. “I am not a professor,” said I.
  • “Oh,” returned Mr. Brown, “professor, here in Belgium, means a teacher,
  • that is all.”
  • My conscience thus quieted, I thanked Mr. Brown, and, for the present,
  • withdrew. This time I stepped out into the street with a relieved heart;
  • the task I had imposed on myself for that day was executed. I might now
  • take some hours of holiday. I felt free to look up. For the first time
  • I remarked the sparkling clearness of the air, the deep blue of the sky,
  • the gay clean aspect of the white-washed or painted houses; I saw what
  • a fine street was the Rue Royale, and, walking leisurely along its broad
  • pavement, I continued to survey its stately hotels, till the palisades,
  • the gates, and trees of the park appearing in sight, offered to my eye a
  • new attraction. I remember, before entering the park, I stood awhile to
  • contemplate the statue of General Belliard, and then I advanced to the
  • top of the great staircase just beyond, and I looked down into a narrow
  • back street, which I afterwards learnt was called the Rue d’Isabelle.
  • I well recollect that my eye rested on the green door of a rather large
  • house opposite, where, on a brass plate, was inscribed, “Pensionnat de
  • Demoiselles.” Pensionnat! The word excited an uneasy sensation in
  • my mind; it seemed to speak of restraint. Some of the demoiselles,
  • externats no doubt, were at that moment issuing from the door--I looked
  • for a pretty face amongst them, but their close, little French bonnets
  • hid their features; in a moment they were gone.
  • I had traversed a good deal of Brussels before five o’clock arrived,
  • but punctually as that hour struck I was again in the Rue Royale.
  • Re-admitted to Mr. Brown’s breakfast-room, I found him, as before,
  • seated at the table, and he was not alone--a gentleman stood by the
  • hearth. Two words of introduction designated him as my future master.
  • “M. Pelet, Mr. Crimsworth; Mr. Crimsworth, M. Pelet,” a bow on each
  • side finished the ceremony. I don’t know what sort of a bow I made; an
  • ordinary one, I suppose, for I was in a tranquil, commonplace frame of
  • mind; I felt none of the agitation which had troubled my first interview
  • with Edward Crimsworth. M. Pelet’s bow was extremely polite, yet not
  • theatrical, scarcely French; he and I were presently seated opposite to
  • each other. In a pleasing voice, low, and, out of consideration to my
  • foreign ears, very distinct and deliberate, M. Pelet intimated that he
  • had just been receiving from “le respectable M. Brown,” an account of my
  • attainments and character, which relieved him from all scruple as to
  • the propriety of engaging me as professor of English and Latin in
  • his establishment; nevertheless, for form’s sake, he would put a few
  • questions to test my powers. He did, and expressed in flattering terms
  • his satisfaction at my answers. The subject of salary next came on; it
  • was fixed at one thousand francs per annum, besides board and lodging.
  • “And in addition,” suggested M. Pelet, “as there will be some hours
  • in each day during which your services will not be required in my
  • establishment, you may, in time, obtain employment in other seminaries,
  • and thus turn your vacant moments to profitable account.”
  • I thought this very kind, and indeed I found afterwards that the terms
  • on which M. Pelet had engaged me were really liberal for Brussels;
  • instruction being extremely cheap there on account of the number of
  • teachers. It was further arranged that I should be installed in my new
  • post the very next day, after which M. Pelet and I parted.
  • Well, and what was he like? and what were my impressions concerning him?
  • He was a man of about forty years of age, of middle size, and rather
  • emaciated figure; his face was pale, his cheeks were sunk, and his eyes
  • hollow; his features were pleasing and regular, they had a French
  • turn (for M. Pelet was no Fleming, but a Frenchman both by birth
  • and parentage), yet the degree of harshness inseparable from Gallic
  • lineaments was, in his case, softened by a mild blue eye, and a
  • melancholy, almost suffering, expression of countenance; his physiognomy
  • was “fine et spirituelle.” I use two French words because they define
  • better than any English terms the species of intelligence with which his
  • features were imbued. He was altogether an interesting and prepossessing
  • personage. I wondered only at the utter absence of all the ordinary
  • characteristics of his profession, and almost feared he could not be
  • stern and resolute enough for a schoolmaster. Externally at least
  • M. Pelet presented an absolute contrast to my late master, Edward
  • Crimsworth.
  • Influenced by the impression I had received of his gentleness, I was a
  • good deal surprised when, on arriving the next day at my new employer’s
  • house, and being admitted to a first view of what was to be the
  • sphere of my future labours, namely the large, lofty, and well-lighted
  • schoolrooms, I beheld a numerous assemblage of pupils, boys of course,
  • whose collective appearance showed all the signs of a full, flourishing,
  • and well-disciplined seminary. As I traversed the classes in company
  • with M. Pelet, a profound silence reigned on all sides, and if by chance
  • a murmur or a whisper arose, one glance from the pensive eye of this
  • most gentle pedagogue stilled it instantly. It was astonishing, I
  • thought, how so mild a check could prove so effectual. When I had
  • perambulated the length and breadth of the classes, M. Pelet turned and
  • said to me--
  • “Would you object to taking the boys as they are, and testing their
  • proficiency in English?”
  • The proposal was unexpected. I had thought I should have been allowed at
  • least three days to prepare; but it is a bad omen to commence any career
  • by hesitation, so I just stepped to the professor’s desk near which we
  • stood, and faced the circle of my pupils. I took a moment to collect
  • my thoughts, and likewise to frame in French the sentence by which I
  • proposed to open business. I made it as short as possible:--
  • “Messieurs, prenez vos livres de lecture.”
  • “Anglais ou Francais, monsieur?” demanded a thickset, moon-faced young
  • Flamand in a blouse. The answer was fortunately easy:--
  • “Anglais.”
  • I determined to give myself as little trouble as possible in this
  • lesson; it would not do yet to trust my unpractised tongue with the
  • delivery of explanations; my accent and idiom would be too open to the
  • criticisms of the young gentlemen before me, relative to whom I felt
  • already it would be necessary at once to take up an advantageous
  • position, and I proceeded to employ means accordingly.
  • “Commencez!” cried I, when they had all produced their books. The
  • moon-faced youth (by name Jules Vanderkelkov, as I afterwards learnt)
  • took the first sentence. The “livre de lecture” was the “Vicar of
  • Wakefield,” much used in foreign schools because it is supposed to
  • contain prime samples of conversational English; it might, however,
  • have been a Runic scroll for any resemblance the words, as enunciated by
  • Jules, bore to the language in ordinary use amongst the natives of Great
  • Britain. My God! how he did snuffle, snort, and wheeze! All he said was
  • said in his throat and nose, for it is thus the Flamands speak, but
  • I heard him to the end of his paragraph without proffering a word of
  • correction, whereat he looked vastly self-complacent, convinced,
  • no doubt, that he had acquitted himself like a real born and bred
  • “Anglais.” In the same unmoved silence I listened to a dozen in
  • rotation, and when the twelfth had concluded with splutter, hiss, and
  • mumble, I solemnly laid down the book.
  • “Arretez!” said I. There was a pause, during which I regarded them all
  • with a steady and somewhat stern gaze; a dog, if stared at hard enough
  • and long enough, will show symptoms of embarrassment, and so at length
  • did my bench of Belgians. Perceiving that some of the faces before me
  • were beginning to look sullen, and others ashamed, I slowly joined my
  • hands, and ejaculated in a deep “voix de poitrine”--
  • “Comme c’est affreux!”
  • They looked at each other, pouted, coloured, swung their heels; they
  • were not pleased, I saw, but they were impressed, and in the way
  • I wished them to be. Having thus taken them down a peg in their
  • self-conceit, the next step was to raise myself in their estimation; not
  • a very easy thing, considering that I hardly dared to speak for fear of
  • betraying my own deficiencies.
  • “Ecoutez, messieurs!” said I, and I endeavoured to throw into my
  • accents the compassionate tone of a superior being, who, touched by the
  • extremity of the helplessness, which at first only excited his scorn,
  • deigns at length to bestow aid. I then began at the very beginning of
  • the “Vicar of Wakefield,” and read, in a slow, distinct voice, some
  • twenty pages, they all the while sitting mute and listening with fixed
  • attention; by the time I had done nearly an hour had elapsed. I then
  • rose and said:--
  • “C’est assez pour aujourd’hui, messieurs; demain nous recommencerons, et
  • j’espere que tout ira bien.”
  • With this oracular sentence I bowed, and in company with M. Pelet
  • quitted the school-room.
  • “C’est bien! c’est tres bien!” said my principal as we entered his
  • parlour. “Je vois que monsieur a de l’adresse; cela, me plait, car, dans
  • l’instruction, l’adresse fait tout autant que le savoir.”
  • From the parlour M. Pelet conducted me to my apartment, my “chambre,”
  • as Monsieur said with a certain air of complacency. It was a very small
  • room, with an excessively small bed, but M. Pelet gave me to understand
  • that I was to occupy it quite alone, which was of course a great
  • comfort. Yet, though so limited in dimensions, it had two windows. Light
  • not being taxed in Belgium, the people never grudge its admission into
  • their houses; just here, however, this observation is not very APROPOS,
  • for one of these windows was boarded up; the open windows looked into
  • the boys’ playground. I glanced at the other, as wondering what aspect
  • it would present if disencumbered of the boards. M. Pelet read, I
  • suppose, the expression of my eye; he explained:--
  • “La fenetre fermee donne sur un jardin appartenant a un pensionnat
  • de demoiselles,” said he, “et les convenances exigent--enfin, vous
  • comprenez--n’est-ce pas, monsieur?”
  • “Oui, oui,” was my reply, and I looked of course quite satisfied; but
  • when M. Pelet had retired and closed the door after him, the first thing
  • I did was to scrutinize closely the nailed boards, hoping to find
  • some chink or crevice which I might enlarge, and so get a peep at the
  • consecrated ground. My researches were vain, for the boards were well
  • joined and strongly nailed. It is astonishing how disappointed I felt. I
  • thought it would have been so pleasant to have looked out upon a
  • garden planted with flowers and trees, so amusing to have watched the
  • demoiselles at their play; to have studied female character in a variety
  • of phases, myself the while sheltered from view by a modest muslin
  • curtain, whereas, owing doubtless to the absurd scruples of some old
  • duenna of a directress, I had now only the option of looking at a bare
  • gravelled court, with an enormous “pas de geant” in the middle, and the
  • monotonous walls and windows of a boys’ school-house round. Not only
  • then, but many a time after, especially in moments of weariness and
  • low spirits, did I look with dissatisfied eyes on that most tantalizing
  • board, longing to tear it away and get a glimpse of the green region
  • which I imagined to lie beyond. I knew a tree grew close up to the
  • window, for though there were as yet no leaves to rustle, I often heard
  • at night the tapping of branches against the panes. In the daytime,
  • when I listened attentively, I could hear, even through the boards, the
  • voices of the demoiselles in their hours of recreation, and, to speak
  • the honest truth, my sentimental reflections were occasionally a trifle
  • disarranged by the not quite silvery, in fact the too often brazen
  • sounds, which, rising from the unseen paradise below, penetrated
  • clamorously into my solitude. Not to mince matters, it really seemed to
  • me a doubtful case whether the lungs of Mdlle. Reuter’s girls or those
  • of M. Pelet’s boys were the strongest, and when it came to shrieking
  • the girls indisputably beat the boys hollow. I forgot to say, by-the-by,
  • that Reuter was the name of the old lady who had had my window bearded
  • up. I say old, for such I, of course, concluded her to be, judging from
  • her cautious, chaperon-like proceedings; besides, nobody ever spoke of
  • her as young. I remember I was very much amused when I first heard her
  • Christian name; it was Zoraide--Mademoiselle Zoraide Reuter. But the
  • continental nations do allow themselves vagaries in the choice of names,
  • such as we sober English never run into. I think, indeed, we have too
  • limited a list to choose from.
  • Meantime my path was gradually growing smooth before me. I, in a
  • few weeks, conquered the teasing difficulties inseparable from the
  • commencement of almost every career. Ere long I had acquired as much
  • facility in speaking French as set me at my ease with my pupils; and
  • as I had encountered them on a right footing at the very beginning, and
  • continued tenaciously to retain the advantage I had early gained, they
  • never attempted mutiny, which circumstance, all who are in any degree
  • acquainted with the ongoings of Belgian schools, and who know the
  • relation in which professors and pupils too frequently stand towards
  • each other in those establishments, will consider an important and
  • uncommon one. Before concluding this chapter I will say a word on the
  • system I pursued with regard to my classes: my experience may possibly
  • be of use to others.
  • It did not require very keen observation to detect the character of the
  • youth of Brabant, but it needed a certain degree of tact to adopt one’s
  • measures to their capacity. Their intellectual faculties were generally
  • weak, their animal propensities strong; thus there was at once an
  • impotence and a kind of inert force in their natures; they were dull,
  • but they were also singularly stubborn, heavy as lead and, like lead,
  • most difficult to move. Such being the case, it would have been truly
  • absurd to exact from them much in the way of mental exertion; having
  • short memories, dense intelligence, feeble reflective powers, they
  • recoiled with repugnance from any occupation that demanded close study
  • or deep thought. Had the abhorred effort been extorted from them by
  • injudicious and arbitrary measures on the part of the Professor, they
  • would have resisted as obstinately, as clamorously, as desperate swine;
  • and though not brave singly, they were relentless acting EN MASSE.
  • I understood that before my arrival in M. Pelet’s establishment, the
  • combined insubordination of the pupils had effected the dismissal of
  • more than one English master. It was necessary then to exact only the
  • most moderate application from natures so little qualified to apply--to
  • assist, in every practicable way, understandings so opaque and
  • contracted--to be ever gentle, considerate, yielding even, to a certain
  • point, with dispositions so irrationally perverse; but, having reached
  • that culminating point of indulgence, you must fix your foot, plant it,
  • root it in rock--become immutable as the towers of Ste. Gudule; for a
  • step--but half a step farther, and you would plunge headlong into the
  • gulf of imbecility; there lodged, you would speedily receive proofs
  • of Flemish gratitude and magnanimity in showers of Brabant saliva and
  • handfuls of Low Country mud. You might smooth to the utmost the path of
  • learning, remove every pebble from the track; but then you must finally
  • insist with decision on the pupil taking your arm and allowing himself
  • to be led quietly along the prepared road. When I had brought down my
  • lesson to the lowest level of my dullest pupil’s capacity--when I
  • had shown myself the mildest, the most tolerant of masters--a word of
  • impertinence, a movement of disobedience, changed me at once into
  • a despot. I offered then but one alternative--submission and
  • acknowledgment of error, or ignominious expulsion. This system answered,
  • and my influence, by degrees, became established on a firm basis. “The
  • boy is father to the man,” it is said; and so I often thought when
  • looked at my boys and remembered the political history of their
  • ancestors. Pelet’s school was merely an epitome of the Belgian nation.
  • CHAPTER VIII.
  • AND Pelet himself? How did I continue to like him? Oh, extremely well!
  • Nothing could be more smooth, gentlemanlike, and even friendly, than
  • his demeanour to me. I had to endure from him neither cold neglect,
  • irritating interference, nor pretentious assumption of superiority. I
  • fear, however, two poor, hard-worked Belgian ushers in the establishment
  • could not have said as much; to them the director’s manner was
  • invariably dry, stern, and cool. I believe he perceived once or twice
  • that I was a little shocked at the difference he made between them and
  • me, and accounted for it by saying, with a quiet sarcastic smile--
  • “Ce ne sont que des Flamands--allez!”
  • And then he took his cigar gently from his lips and spat on the painted
  • floor of the room in which we were sitting. Flamands certainly they
  • were, and both had the true Flamand physiognomy, where intellectual
  • inferiority is marked in lines none can mistake; still they were men,
  • and, in the main, honest men; and I could not see why their being
  • aboriginals of the flat, dull soil should serve as a pretext for
  • treating them with perpetual severity and contempt. This idea, of
  • injustice somewhat poisoned the pleasure I might otherwise have derived
  • from Pelet’s soft affable manner to myself. Certainly it was agreeable,
  • when the day’s work was over, to find one’s employer an intelligent
  • and cheerful companion; and if he was sometimes a little sarcastic
  • and sometimes a little too insinuating, and if I did discover that
  • his mildness was more a matter of appearance than of reality--if I did
  • occasionally suspect the existence of flint or steel under an external
  • covering of velvet--still we are none of us perfect; and weary as I was
  • of the atmosphere of brutality and insolence in which I had constantly
  • lived at X----, I had no inclination now, on casting anchor in calmer
  • regions, to institute at once a prying search after defects that were
  • scrupulously withdrawn and carefully veiled from my view. I was willing
  • to take Pelet for what he seemed--to believe him benevolent and friendly
  • until some untoward event should prove him otherwise. He was not
  • married, and I soon perceived he had all a Frenchman’s, all a Parisian’s
  • notions about matrimony and women. I suspected a degree of laxity in
  • his code of morals, there was something so cold and BLASE in his tone
  • whenever he alluded to what he called “le beau sexe;” but he was too
  • gentlemanlike to intrude topics I did not invite, and as he was really
  • intelligent and really fond of intellectual subjects of discourse, he
  • and I always found enough to talk about, without seeking themes in the
  • mire. I hated his fashion of mentioning love; I abhorred, from my soul,
  • mere licentiousness. He felt the difference of our notions, and, by
  • mutual consent, we kept off ground debateable.
  • Pelet’s house was kept and his kitchen managed by his mother, a real
  • old Frenchwoman; she had been handsome--at least she told me so, and I
  • strove to believe her; she was now ugly, as only continental old women
  • can be; perhaps, though, her style of dress made her look uglier than
  • she really was. Indoors she would go about without cap, her grey hair
  • strangely dishevelled; then, when at home, she seldom wore a gown--only
  • a shabby cotton camisole; shoes, too, were strangers to her feet, and in
  • lieu of them she sported roomy slippers, trodden down at the heels. On
  • the other hand, whenever it was her pleasure to appear abroad, as on
  • Sundays and fete-days, she would put on some very brilliant-coloured
  • dress, usually of thin texture, a silk bonnet with a wreath of flowers,
  • and a very fine shawl. She was not, in the main, an ill-natured old
  • woman, but an incessant and most indiscreet talker; she kept chiefly
  • in and about the kitchen, and seemed rather to avoid her son’s august
  • presence; of him, indeed, she evidently stood in awe. When he reproved
  • her, his reproofs were bitter and unsparing; but he seldom gave himself
  • that trouble.
  • Madame Pelet had her own society, her own circle of chosen visitors,
  • whom, however, I seldom saw, as she generally entertained them in what
  • she called her “cabinet,” a small den of a place adjoining the kitchen,
  • and descending into it by one or two steps. On these steps, by-the-by,
  • I have not unfrequently seen Madame Pelet seated with a trencher on
  • her knee, engaged in the threefold employment of eating her dinner,
  • gossiping with her favourite servant, the housemaid, and scolding her
  • antagonist, the cook; she never dined, and seldom indeed took any meal
  • with her son; and as to showing her face at the boys’ table, that was
  • quite out of the question. These details will sound very odd in English
  • ears, but Belgium is not England, and its ways are not our ways.
  • Madame Pelet’s habits of life, then, being taken into consideration,
  • I was a good deal surprised when, one Thursday evening (Thursday was
  • always a half-holiday), as I was sitting all alone in my apartment,
  • correcting a huge pile of English and Latin exercises, a servant
  • tapped at the door, and, on its being opened, presented Madame Pelet’s
  • compliments, and she would be happy to see me to take my “gouter” (a
  • meal which answers to our English “tea”) with her in the dining-room.
  • “Plait-il?” said I, for I thought I must have misunderstood, the
  • message and invitation were so unusual; the same words were repeated. I
  • accepted, of course, and as I descended the stairs, I wondered what
  • whim had entered the old lady’s brain; her son was out--gone to pass the
  • evening at the Salle of the Grande Harmonie or some other club of which
  • he was a member. Just as I laid my hand on the handle of the dining-room
  • door, a queer idea glanced across my mind.
  • “Surely she’s not going to make love to me,” said I. “I’ve heard of
  • old Frenchwomen doing odd things in that line; and the gouter? They
  • generally begin such affairs with eating and drinking, I believe.”
  • There was a fearful dismay in this suggestion of my excited imagination,
  • and if I had allowed myself time to dwell upon it, I should no doubt
  • have cut there and then, rushed back to my chamber, and bolted myself
  • in; but whenever a danger or a horror is veiled with uncertainty,
  • the primary wish of the mind is to ascertain first the naked truth,
  • reserving the expedient of flight for the moment when its dread
  • anticipation shall be realized. I turned the door-handle, and in an
  • instant had crossed the fatal threshold, closed the door behind me, and
  • stood in the presence of Madame Pelet.
  • Gracious heavens! The first view of her seemed to confirm my worst
  • apprehensions. There she sat, dressed out in a light green muslin gown,
  • on her head a lace cap with flourishing red roses in the frill; her
  • table was carefully spread; there were fruit, cakes, and coffee, with a
  • bottle of something--I did not know what. Already the cold sweat started
  • on my brow, already I glanced back over my shoulder at the closed
  • door, when, to my unspeakable relief, my eye, wandering mildly in the
  • direction of the stove, rested upon a second figure, seated in a large
  • fauteuil beside it. This was a woman, too, and, moreover, an old woman,
  • and as fat and as rubicund as Madame Pelet was meagre and yellow; her
  • attire was likewise very fine, and spring flowers of different hues
  • circled in a bright wreath the crown of her violet-coloured velvet
  • bonnet.
  • I had only time to make these general observations when Madame Pelet,
  • coming forward with what she intended should be a graceful and elastic
  • step, thus accosted me:
  • “Monsieur is indeed most obliging to quit his books, his studies, at the
  • request of an insignificant person like me--will Monsieur complete his
  • kindness by allowing me to present him to my dear friend Madame Reuter,
  • who resides in the neighbouring house--the young ladies’ school.”
  • “Ah!” thought I, “I knew she was old,” and I bowed and took my seat.
  • Madame Reuter placed herself at the table opposite to me.
  • “How do you like Belgium, Monsieur?” asked she, in an accent of the
  • broadest Bruxellois. I could now well distinguish the difference between
  • the fine and pure Parisian utterance of M. Pelet, for instance, and
  • the guttural enunciation of the Flamands. I answered politely, and then
  • wondered how so coarse and clumsy an old woman as the one before me
  • should be at the head of a ladies’ seminary, which I had always heard
  • spoken of in terms of high commendation. In truth there was something
  • to wonder at. Madame Reuter looked more like a joyous, free-living old
  • Flemish fermiere, or even a maitresse d’auberge, than a staid, grave,
  • rigid directrice de pensionnat. In general the continental, or at least
  • the Belgian old women permit themselves a licence of manners, speech,
  • and aspect, such as our venerable granddames would recoil from as
  • absolutely disreputable, and Madame Reuter’s jolly face bore evidence
  • that she was no exception to the rule of her country; there was a
  • twinkle and leer in her left eye; her right she kept habitually half
  • shut, which I thought very odd indeed. After several vain attempts to
  • comprehend the motives of these two droll old creatures for inviting me
  • to join them at their gouter, I at last fairly gave it up, and resigning
  • myself to inevitable mystification, I sat and looked first at one, then
  • at the other, taking care meantime to do justice to the confitures,
  • cakes, and coffee, with which they amply supplied me. They, too, ate,
  • and that with no delicate appetite, and having demolished a large
  • portion of the solids, they proposed a “petit verre.” I declined. Not
  • so Mesdames Pelet and Reuter; each mixed herself what I thought rather
  • a stiff tumbler of punch, and placing it on a stand near the stove, they
  • drew up their chairs to that convenience, and invited me to do the same.
  • I obeyed; and being seated fairly between them, I was thus addressed
  • first by Madame Pelet, then by Madame Reuter.
  • “We will now speak of business,” said Madame Pelet, and she went on to
  • make an elaborate speech, which, being interpreted, was to the effect
  • that she had asked for the pleasure of my company that evening in
  • order to give her friend Madame Reuter an opportunity of broaching an
  • important proposal, which might turn out greatly to my advantage.
  • “Pourvu que vous soyez sage,” said Madame Reuter, “et a vrai dire,
  • vous en avez bien l’air. Take one drop of the punch” (or ponche, as she
  • pronounced it); “it is an agreeable and wholesome beverage after a full
  • meal.”
  • I bowed, but again declined it. She went on:
  • “I feel,” said she, after a solemn sip--“I feel profoundly the
  • importance of the commission with which my dear daughter has entrusted
  • me, for you are aware, Monsieur, that it is my daughter who directs the
  • establishment in the next house?”
  • “Ah! I thought it was yourself, madame.” Though, indeed, at that moment
  • I recollected that it was called Mademoiselle, not Madame Reuter’s
  • pensionnat.
  • “I! Oh, no! I manage the house and look after the servants, as my friend
  • Madame Pelet does for Monsieur her son--nothing more. Ah! you thought I
  • gave lessons in class--did you?”
  • And she laughed loud and long, as though the idea tickled her fancy
  • amazingly.
  • “Madame is in the wrong to laugh,” I observed; “if she does not give
  • lessons, I am sure it is not because she cannot;” and I whipped out a
  • white pocket-handkerchief and wafted it, with a French grace, past my
  • nose, bowing at the same time.
  • “Quel charmant jeune homme!” murmured Madame Pelet in a low voice.
  • Madame Reuter, being less sentimental, as she was Flamand and not
  • French, only laughed again.
  • “You are a dangerous person, I fear,” said she; “if you can forge
  • compliments at that rate, Zoraide will positively be afraid of you; but
  • if you are good, I will keep your secret, and not tell her how well you
  • can flatter. Now, listen what sort of a proposal she makes to you. She
  • has heard that you are an excellent professor, and as she wishes to get
  • the very best masters for her school (car Zoraide fait tout comme une
  • reine, c’est une veritable maitresse-femme), she has commissioned me to
  • step over this afternoon, and sound Madame Pelet as to the possibility
  • of engaging you. Zoraide is a wary general; she never advances without
  • first examining well her ground. I don’t think she would be pleased
  • if she knew I had already disclosed her intentions to you; she did not
  • order me to go so far, but I thought there would be no harm in letting
  • you into the secret, and Madame Pelet was of the same opinion. Take
  • care, however, you don’t betray either of us to Zoraide--to my
  • daughter, I mean; she is so discreet and circumspect herself, she cannot
  • understand that one should find a pleasure in gossiping a little--”
  • “C’est absolument comme mon fils!” cried Madame Pelet.
  • “All the world is so changed since our girlhood!” rejoined the other:
  • “young people have such old heads now. But to return, Monsieur. Madame
  • Pelet will mention the subject of your giving lessons in my daughter’s
  • establishment to her son, and he will speak to you; and then to-morrow,
  • you will step over to our house, and ask to see my daughter, and you
  • will introduce the subject as if the first intimation of it had reached
  • you from M. Pelet himself, and be sure you never mention my name, for I
  • would not displease Zoraide on any account.”
  • “Bien! bien!” interrupted I--for all this chatter and circumlocution
  • began to bore me very much; “I will consult M. Pelet, and the thing
  • shall be settled as you desire. Good evening, mesdames--I am infinitely
  • obliged to you.”
  • “Comment! vous vous en allez deja?” exclaimed Madame Pelet.
  • “Prenez encore quelquechose, monsieur; une pomme cuite, des biscuits,
  • encore une tasse de cafe?”
  • “Merci, merci, madame--au revoir.” And I backed at last out of the
  • apartment.
  • Having regained my own room, I set myself to turn over in my mind
  • the incident of the evening. It seemed a queer affair altogether, and
  • queerly managed; the two old women had made quite a little intricate
  • mess of it; still I found that the uppermost feeling in my mind on the
  • subject was one of satisfaction. In the first place it would be a change
  • to give lessons in another seminary, and then to teach young ladies
  • would be an occupation so interesting--to be admitted at all into a
  • ladies’ boarding-school would be an incident so new in my life. Besides,
  • thought I, as I glanced at the boarded window, “I shall now at last see
  • the mysterious garden: I shall gaze both on the angels and their Eden.”
  • CHAPTER IX.
  • M. PELET could not of course object to the proposal made by Mdlle.
  • Reuter; permission to accept such additional employment, should it
  • offer, having formed an article of the terms on which he had engaged me.
  • It was, therefore, arranged in the course of next day that I should
  • be at liberty to give lessons in Mdlle. Reuter’s establishment four
  • afternoons in every week.
  • When evening came I prepared to step over in order to seek a conference
  • with Mademoiselle herself on the subject; I had not had time to pay the
  • visit before, having been all day closely occupied in class. I remember
  • very well that before quitting my chamber, I held a brief debate with
  • myself as to whether I should change my ordinary attire for something
  • smarter. At last I concluded it would be a waste of labour. “Doubtless,”
  • thought I, “she is some stiff old maid; for though the daughter of
  • Madame Reuter, she may well number upwards of forty winters; besides, if
  • it were otherwise, if she be both young and pretty, I am not handsome,
  • and no dressing can make me so, therefore I’ll go as I am.” And off
  • I started, cursorily glancing sideways as I passed the toilet-table,
  • surmounted by a looking-glass: a thin irregular face I saw, with sunk,
  • dark eyes under a large, square forehead, complexion destitute of bloom
  • or attraction; something young, but not youthful, no object to win a
  • lady’s love, no butt for the shafts of Cupid.
  • I was soon at the entrance of the pensionnat, in a moment I had pulled
  • the bell; in another moment the door was opened, and within appeared a
  • passage paved alternately with black and white marble; the walls were
  • painted in imitation of marble also; and at the far end opened a glass
  • door, through which I saw shrubs and a grass-plat, looking pleasant in
  • the sunshine of the mild spring evening--for it was now the middle of
  • April.
  • This, then, was my first glimpse of the garden; but I had not time to
  • look long, the portress, after having answered in the affirmative
  • my question as to whether her mistress was at home, opened the
  • folding-doors of a room to the left, and having ushered me in, closed
  • them behind me. I found myself in a salon with a very well-painted,
  • highly varnished floor; chairs and sofas covered with white draperies,
  • a green porcelain stove, walls hung with pictures in gilt frames, a gilt
  • pendule and other ornaments on the mantelpiece, a large lustre pendent
  • from the centre of the ceiling, mirrors, consoles, muslin curtains, and
  • a handsome centre table completed the inventory of furniture. All looked
  • extremely clean and glittering, but the general effect would have been
  • somewhat chilling had not a second large pair of folding-doors, standing
  • wide open, and disclosing another and smaller salon, more snugly
  • furnished, offered some relief to the eye. This room was carpeted, and
  • therein was a piano, a couch, a chiffonniere--above all, it contained
  • a lofty window with a crimson curtain, which, being undrawn, afforded
  • another glimpse of the garden, through the large, clear panes, round
  • which some leaves of ivy, some tendrils of vine were trained.
  • “Monsieur Creemsvort, n’est ce pas?” said a voice behind me; and,
  • starting involuntarily, I turned. I had been so taken up with the
  • contemplation of the pretty little salon that I had not noticed the
  • entrance of a person into the larger room. It was, however, Mdlle.
  • Reuter who now addressed me, and stood close beside me; and when I had
  • bowed with instantaneously recovered sang-froid--for I am not easily
  • embarrassed--I commenced the conversation by remarking on the pleasant
  • aspect of her little cabinet, and the advantage she had over M. Pelet in
  • possessing a garden.
  • “Yes,” she said, “she often thought so;” and added, “it is my garden,
  • monsieur, which makes me retain this house, otherwise I should probably
  • have removed to larger and more commodious premises long since; but you
  • see I could not take my garden with me, and I should scarcely find one
  • so large and pleasant anywhere else in town.”
  • I approved her judgment.
  • “But you have not seen it yet,” said she, rising; “come to the window
  • and take a better view.” I followed her; she opened the sash, and
  • leaning out I saw in full the enclosed demesne which had hitherto been
  • to me an unknown region. It was a long, not very broad strip of cultured
  • ground, with an alley bordered by enormous old fruit trees down the
  • middle; there was a sort of lawn, a parterre of rose-trees, some
  • flower-borders, and, on the far side, a thickly planted copse of lilacs,
  • laburnums, and acacias. It looked pleasant, to me--very pleasant, so
  • long a time had elapsed since I had seen a garden of any sort. But it
  • was not only on Mdlle. Reuter’s garden that my eyes dwelt; when I had
  • taken a view of her well-trimmed beds and budding shrubberies, I allowed
  • my glance to come back to herself, nor did I hastily withdraw it.
  • I had thought to see a tall, meagre, yellow, conventual image in black,
  • with a close white cap, bandaged under the chin like a nun’s head-gear;
  • whereas, there stood by me a little and roundly formed woman, who might
  • indeed be older than I, but was still young; she could not, I thought,
  • be more than six or seven and twenty; she was as fair as a fair
  • Englishwoman; she had no cap; her hair was nut-brown, and she wore it
  • in curls; pretty her features were not, nor very soft, nor very regular,
  • but neither were they in any degree plain, and I already saw cause
  • to deem them expressive. What was their predominant cast? Was it
  • sagacity?--sense? Yes, I thought so; but I could scarcely as yet be
  • sure. I discovered, however, that there was a certain serenity of eye,
  • and freshness of complexion, most pleasing to behold. The colour on her
  • cheek was like the bloom on a good apple, which is as sound at the core
  • as it is red on the rind.
  • Mdlle. Reuter and I entered upon business. She said she was not
  • absolutely certain of the wisdom of the step she was about to take,
  • because I was so young, and parents might possibly object to a professor
  • like me for their daughters: “But it is often well to act on one’s own
  • judgment,” said she, “and to lead parents, rather than be led by them.
  • The fitness of a professor is not a matter of age; and, from what I have
  • heard, and from what I observe myself, I would much rather trust you
  • than M. Ledru, the music-master, who is a married man of near fifty.”
  • I remarked that I hoped she would find me worthy of her good opinion;
  • that if I knew myself, I was incapable of betraying any confidence
  • reposed in me. “Du reste,” said she, “the surveillance will be strictly
  • attended to.” And then she proceeded to discuss the subject of terms.
  • She was very cautious, quite on her guard; she did not absolutely
  • bargain, but she warily sounded me to find out what my expectations
  • might be; and when she could not get me to name a sum, she reasoned and
  • reasoned with a fluent yet quiet circumlocution of speech, and at last
  • nailed me down to five hundred francs per annum--not too much, but I
  • agreed. Before the negotiation was completed, it began to grow a little
  • dusk. I did not hasten it, for I liked well enough to sit and hear
  • her talk; I was amused with the sort of business talent she displayed.
  • Edward could not have shown himself more practical, though he might have
  • evinced more coarseness and urgency; and then she had so many reasons,
  • so many explanations; and, after all, she succeeded in proving herself
  • quite disinterested and even liberal. At last she concluded, she could
  • say no more, because, as I acquiesced in all things, there was no
  • further ground for the exercise of her parts of speech. I was obliged to
  • rise. I would rather have sat a little longer; what had I to return to
  • but my small empty room? And my eyes had a pleasure in looking at
  • Mdlle. Reuter, especially now, when the twilight softened her features a
  • little, and, in the doubtful dusk, I could fancy her forehead as open
  • as it was really elevated, her mouth touched with turns of sweetness
  • as well as defined in lines of sense. When I rose to go, I held out
  • my hand, on purpose, though I knew it was contrary to the etiquette of
  • foreign habits; she smiled, and said--
  • “Ah! c’est comme tous les Anglais,” but gave me her hand very kindly.
  • “It is the privilege of my country, Mademoiselle,” said I; “and,
  • remember, I shall always claim it.”
  • She laughed a little, quite good-naturedly, and with the sort of
  • tranquillity obvious in all she did--a tranquillity which soothed and
  • suited me singularly, at least I thought so that evening. Brussels
  • seemed a very pleasant place to me when I got out again into the street,
  • and it appeared as if some cheerful, eventful, upward-tending career
  • were even then opening to me, on that selfsame mild, still April night.
  • So impressionable a being is man, or at least such a man as I was in
  • those days.
  • CHAPTER X.
  • NEXT day the morning hours seemed to pass very slowly at M. Pelet’s; I
  • wanted the afternoon to come that I might go again to the neighbouring
  • pensionnat and give my first lesson within its pleasant precincts; for
  • pleasant they appeared to me. At noon the hour of recreation arrived; at
  • one o’clock we had lunch; this got on the time, and at last St. Gudule’s
  • deep bell, tolling slowly two, marked the moment for which I had been
  • waiting.
  • At the foot of the narrow back-stairs that descended from my room, I met
  • M. Pelet.
  • “Comme vous avez l’air rayonnant!” said he. “Je ne vous ai jamais vu
  • aussi gai. Que s’est-il donc passe?”
  • “Apparemment que j’aime les changements,” replied I.
  • “Ah! je comprends--c’est cela--soyez sage seulement. Vous etes bien
  • jeune--trop jeune pour le role que vous allez jouer; il faut prendre
  • garde--savez-vous?”
  • “Mais quel danger y a-t-il?”
  • “Je n’en sais rien--ne vous laissez pas aller a de vives
  • impressions--voila tout.”
  • I laughed: a sentiment of exquisite pleasure played over my nerves at
  • the thought that “vives impressions” were likely to be created; it was
  • the deadness, the sameness of life’s daily ongoings that had hitherto
  • been my bane; my blouse-clad “eleves” in the boys’ seminary never
  • stirred in me any “vives impressions” except it might be occasionally
  • some of anger. I broke from M. Pelet, and as I strode down the passage
  • he followed me with one of his laughs--a very French, rakish, mocking
  • sound.
  • Again I stood at the neighbouring door, and soon was re-admitted into
  • the cheerful passage with its clear dove-colour imitation marble walls.
  • I followed the portress, and descending a step, and making a turn, I
  • found myself in a sort of corridor; a side-door opened, Mdlle. Reuter’s
  • little figure, as graceful as it was plump, appeared. I could now see
  • her dress in full daylight; a neat, simple mousseline-laine gown fitted
  • her compact round shape to perfection--delicate little collar and
  • manchettes of lace, trim Parisian brodequins showed her neck, wrists,
  • and feet, to complete advantage; but how grave was her face as she
  • came suddenly upon me! Solicitude and business were in her eye--on her
  • forehead; she looked almost stern. Her “Bon jour, monsieur,” was quite
  • polite, but so orderly, so commonplace, it spread directly a cool, damp
  • towel over my “vives impressions.” The servant turned back when her
  • mistress appeared, and I walked slowly along the corridor, side by side
  • with Mdlle. Reuter.
  • “Monsieur will give a lesson in the first class to-day,” said she;
  • “dictation or reading will perhaps be the best thing to begin with, for
  • those are the easiest forms of communicating instruction in a foreign
  • language; and, at the first, a master naturally feels a little
  • unsettled.”
  • She was quite right, as I had found from experience; it only remained
  • for me to acquiesce. We proceeded now in silence. The corridor
  • terminated in a hall, large, lofty, and square; a glass door on one side
  • showed within a long narrow refectory, with tables, an armoire, and
  • two lamps; it was empty; large glass doors, in front, opened on the
  • playground and garden; a broad staircase ascended spirally on the
  • opposite side; the remaining wall showed a pair of great folding-doors,
  • now closed, and admitting, doubtless, to the classes.
  • Mdlle. Reuter turned her eye laterally on me, to ascertain, probably,
  • whether I was collected enough to be ushered into her sanctum sanctorum.
  • I suppose she judged me to be in a tolerable state of self-government,
  • for she opened the door, and I followed her through. A rustling sound of
  • uprising greeted our entrance; without looking to the right or left, I
  • walked straight up the lane between two sets of benches and desks,
  • and took possession of the empty chair and isolated desk raised on an
  • estrade, of one step high, so as to command one division; the other
  • division being under the surveillance of a maitresse similarly elevated.
  • At the back of the estrade, and attached to a moveable partition
  • dividing this schoolroom from another beyond, was a large tableau of
  • wood painted black and varnished; a thick crayon of white chalk lay on
  • my desk for the convenience of elucidating any grammatical or verbal
  • obscurity which might occur in my lessons by writing it upon the
  • tableau; a wet sponge appeared beside the chalk, to enable me to efface
  • the marks when they had served the purpose intended.
  • I carefully and deliberately made these observations before allowing
  • myself to take one glance at the benches before me; having handled the
  • crayon, looked back at the tableau, fingered the sponge in order to
  • ascertain that it was in a right state of moisture, I found myself cool
  • enough to admit of looking calmly up and gazing deliberately round me.
  • And first I observed that Mdlle. Reuter had already glided away, she
  • was nowhere visible; a maitresse or teacher, the one who occupied the
  • corresponding estrade to my own, alone remained to keep guard over me;
  • she was a little in the shade, and, with my short sight, I could only
  • see that she was of a thin bony figure and rather tallowy complexion,
  • and that her attitude, as she sat, partook equally of listlessness and
  • affectation. More obvious, more prominent, shone on by the full light of
  • the large window, were the occupants of the benches just before me, of
  • whom some were girls of fourteen, fifteen, sixteen, some young women
  • from eighteen (as it appeared to me) up to twenty; the most modest
  • attire, the simplest fashion of wearing the hair, were apparent in all;
  • and good features, ruddy, blooming complexions, large and brilliant
  • eyes, forms full, even to solidity, seemed to abound. I did not bear
  • the first view like a stoic; I was dazzled, my eyes fell, and in a voice
  • somewhat too low I murmured--
  • “Prenez vos cahiers de dictee, mesdemoiselles.”
  • Not so had I bid the boys at Pelet’s take their reading-books. A
  • rustle followed, and an opening of desks; behind the lifted lids which
  • momentarily screened the heads bent down to search for exercise-books, I
  • heard tittering and whispers.
  • “Eulalie, je suis prete a pleuer de rire,” observed one.
  • “Comme il a rougi en parlant!”
  • “Oui, c’est un veritable blanc-bec.”
  • “Tais-toi, Hortense--il nous ecoute.”
  • And now the lids sank and the heads reappeared; I had marked three, the
  • whisperers, and I did not scruple to take a very steady look at them as
  • they emerged from their temporary eclipse. It is astonishing what ease
  • and courage their little phrases of flippancy had given me; the idea by
  • which I had been awed was that the youthful beings before me, with their
  • dark nun-like robes and softly braided hair, were a kind of half-angels.
  • The light titter, the giddy whisper, had already in some measure
  • relieved my mind of that fond and oppressive fancy.
  • The three I allude to were just in front, within half a yard of my
  • estrade, and were among the most womanly-looking present. Their names
  • I knew afterwards, and may as well mention now; they were Eulalie,
  • Hortense, Caroline. Eulalie was tall, and very finely shaped: she was
  • fair, and her features were those of a Low Country Madonna; many a
  • “figure de Vierge” have I seen in Dutch pictures exactly resembling
  • hers; there were no angles in her shape or in her face, all was curve
  • and roundness--neither thought, sentiment, nor passion disturbed by line
  • or flush the equality of her pale, clear skin; her noble bust heaved
  • with her regular breathing, her eyes moved a little--by these evidences
  • of life alone could I have distinguished her from some large handsome
  • figure moulded in wax. Hortense was of middle size and stout, her
  • form was ungraceful, her face striking, more alive and brilliant than
  • Eulalie’s, her hair was dark brown, her complexion richly coloured;
  • there were frolic and mischief in her eye: consistency and good sense
  • she might possess, but none of her features betokened those qualities.
  • Caroline was little, though evidently full grown; raven-black hair,
  • very dark eyes, absolutely regular features, with a colourless olive
  • complexion, clear as to the face and sallow about the neck, formed in
  • her that assemblage of points whose union many persons regard as the
  • perfection of beauty. How, with the tintless pallor of her skin and the
  • classic straightness of her lineaments, she managed to look sensual, I
  • don’t know. I think her lips and eyes contrived the affair between
  • them, and the result left no uncertainty on the beholder’s mind. She was
  • sensual now, and in ten years’ time she would be coarse--promise plain
  • was written in her face of much future folly.
  • If I looked at these girls with little scruple, they looked at me
  • with still less. Eulalie raised her unmoved eye to mine, and seemed to
  • expect, passively but securely, an impromptu tribute to her majestic
  • charms. Hortense regarded me boldly, and giggled at the same time, while
  • she said, with an air of impudent freedom--
  • “Dictez-nous quelquechose de facile pour commencer, monsieur.”
  • Caroline shook her loose ringlets of abundant but somewhat coarse hair
  • over her rolling black eyes; parting her lips, as full as those of a
  • hot-blooded Maroon, she showed her well-set teeth sparkling between
  • them, and treated me at the same time to a smile “de sa facon.”
  • Beautiful as Pauline Borghese, she looked at the moment scarcely purer
  • than Lucrece de Borgia. Caroline was of noble family. I heard her
  • lady-mother’s character afterwards, and then I ceased to wonder at the
  • precocious accomplishments of the daughter. These three, I at once saw,
  • deemed themselves the queens of the school, and conceived that by their
  • splendour they threw all the rest into the shade. In less than five
  • minutes they had thus revealed to me their characters, and in less than
  • five minutes I had buckled on a breast-plate of steely indifference, and
  • let down a visor of impassible austerity.
  • “Take your pens and commence writing,” said I, in as dry and trite a
  • voice as if I had been addressing only Jules Vanderkelkov and Co.
  • The dictee now commenced. My three belles interrupted me perpetually
  • with little silly questions and uncalled-for remarks, to some of which I
  • made no answer, and to others replied very quietly and briefly. “Comment
  • dit-on point et virgule en Anglais, monsieur?”
  • “Semi-colon, mademoiselle.”
  • “Semi-collong? Ah, comme c’est drole!” (giggle.)
  • “J’ai une si mauvaise plume--impossible d’ecrire!”
  • “Mais, monsieur--je ne sais pas suivre--vous allez si vite.”
  • “Je n’ai rien compris, moi!”
  • Here a general murmur arose, and the teacher, opening her lips for the
  • first time, ejaculated--
  • “Silence, mesdemoiselles!”
  • No silence followed--on the contrary, the three ladies in front began to
  • talk more loudly.
  • “C’est si difficile, l’Anglais!”
  • “Je deteste la dictee.”
  • “Quel ennui d’ecrire quelquechose que l’on ne comprend pas!”
  • Some of those behind laughed: a degree of confusion began to pervade the
  • class; it was necessary to take prompt measures.
  • “Donnez-moi votre cahier,” said I to Eulalie in an abrupt tone; and
  • bending over, I took it before she had time to give it.
  • “Et vous, mademoiselle--donnez-moi le votre,” continued I, more mildly,
  • addressing a little pale, plain looking girl who sat in the first row of
  • the other division, and whom I had remarked as being at once the ugliest
  • and the most attentive in the room; she rose up, walked over to me, and
  • delivered her book with a grave, modest curtsey. I glanced over the
  • two dictations; Eulalie’s was slurred, blotted, and full of silly
  • mistakes--Sylvie’s (such was the name of the ugly little girl) was
  • clearly written, it contained no error against sense, and but few
  • faults of orthography. I coolly read aloud both exercises, marking the
  • faults--then I looked at Eulalie:
  • “C’est honteux!” said I, and I deliberately tore her dictation in four
  • parts, and presented her with the fragments. I returned Sylvie her book
  • with a smile, saying--
  • “C’est bien--je suis content de vous.”
  • Sylvie looked calmly pleased, Eulalie swelled like an incensed turkey,
  • but the mutiny was quelled: the conceited coquetry and futile flirtation
  • of the first bench were exchanged for a taciturn sullenness, much more
  • convenient to me, and the rest of my lesson passed without interruption.
  • A bell clanging out in the yard announced the moment for the cessation
  • of school labours. I heard our own bell at the same time, and that of a
  • certain public college immediately after. Order dissolved instantly; up
  • started every pupil, I hastened to seize my hat, bow to the maitresse,
  • and quit the room before the tide of externats should pour from the
  • inner class, where I knew near a hundred were prisoned, and whose rising
  • tumult I already heard.
  • I had scarcely crossed the hall and gained the corridor, when Mdlle.
  • Reuter came again upon me.
  • “Step in here a moment,” said she, and she held open the door of
  • the side room from whence she had issued on my arrival; it was a
  • SALLE-A-MANGER, as appeared from the beaufet and the armoire vitree,
  • filled with glass and china, which formed part of its furniture. Ere she
  • had closed the door on me and herself, the corridor was already filled
  • with day-pupils, tearing down their cloaks, bonnets, and cabas from
  • the wooden pegs on which they were suspended; the shrill voice of a
  • maitresse was heard at intervals vainly endeavouring to enforce some
  • sort of order; vainly, I say: discipline there was none in these rough
  • ranks, and yet this was considered one of the best-conducted schools in
  • Brussels.
  • “Well, you have given your first lesson,” began Mdlle. Reuter in the
  • most calm, equable voice, as though quite unconscious of the chaos from
  • which we were separated only by a single wall.
  • “Were you satisfied with your pupils, or did any circumstance in their
  • conduct give you cause for complaint? Conceal nothing from me, repose in
  • me entire confidence.”
  • Happily, I felt in myself complete power to manage my pupils without
  • aid; the enchantment, the golden haze which had dazzled my perspicuity
  • at first, had been a good deal dissipated. I cannot say I was chagrined
  • or downcast by the contrast which the reality of a pensionnat de
  • demoiselles presented to my vague ideal of the same community; I was
  • only enlightened and amused; consequently, I felt in no disposition to
  • complain to Mdlle. Reuter, and I received her considerate invitation to
  • confidence with a smile.
  • “A thousand thanks, mademoiselle, all has gone very smoothly.”
  • She looked more than doubtful.
  • “Et les trois demoiselles du premier banc?” said she.
  • “Ah! tout va au mieux!” was my answer, and Mdlle. Reuter ceased to
  • question me; but her eye--not large, not brilliant, not melting, or
  • kindling, but astute, penetrating, practical, showed she was even with
  • me; it let out a momentary gleam, which said plainly, “Be as close as
  • you like, I am not dependent on your candour; what you would conceal I
  • already know.”
  • By a transition so quiet as to be scarcely perceptible, the directress’s
  • manner changed; the anxious business-air passed from her face, and she
  • began chatting about the weather and the town, and asking in neighbourly
  • wise after M. and Madame Pelet. I answered all her little questions; she
  • prolonged her talk, I went on following its many little windings; she
  • sat so long, said so much, varied so often the topics of discourse,
  • that it was not difficult to perceive she had a particular aim in thus
  • detaining me. Her mere words could have afforded no clue to this
  • aim, but her countenance aided; while her lips uttered only affable
  • commonplaces, her eyes reverted continually to my face. Her glances were
  • not given in full, but out of the corners, so quietly, so stealthily,
  • yet I think I lost not one. I watched her as keenly as she watched me;
  • I perceived soon that she was feeling after my real character; she was
  • searching for salient points, and weak points, and eccentric points;
  • she was applying now this test, now that, hoping in the end to find some
  • chink, some niche, where she could put in her little firm foot and stand
  • upon my neck--mistress of my nature. Do not mistake me, reader, it was
  • no amorous influence she wished to gain--at that time it was only the
  • power of the politician to which she aspired; I was now installed as a
  • professor in her establishment, and she wanted to know where her mind
  • was superior to mine--by what feeling or opinion she could lead me.
  • I enjoyed the game much, and did not hasten its conclusion; sometimes I
  • gave her hopes, beginning a sentence rather weakly, when her shrewd eye
  • would light up--she thought she had me; having led her a little way, I
  • delighted to turn round and finish with sound, hard sense, whereat her
  • countenance would fall. At last a servant entered to announce dinner;
  • the conflict being thus necessarily terminated, we parted without having
  • gained any advantage on either side: Mdlle. Reuter had not even given
  • me an opportunity of attacking her with feeling, and I had managed to
  • baffle her little schemes of craft. It was a regular drawn battle. I
  • again held out my hand when I left the room, she gave me hers; it was a
  • small and white hand, but how cool! I met her eye too in full--obliging
  • her to give me a straightforward look; this last test went against
  • me: it left her as it found her--moderate, temperate, tranquil; me it
  • disappointed.
  • “I am growing wiser,” thought I, as I walked back to M. Pelet’s. “Look
  • at this little woman; is she like the women of novelists and romancers?
  • To read of female character as depicted in Poetry and Fiction, one would
  • think it was made up of sentiment, either for good or bad--here is
  • a specimen, and a most sensible and respectable specimen, too, whose
  • staple ingredient is abstract reason. No Talleyrand was ever more
  • passionless than Zoraide Reuter!” So I thought then; I found
  • afterwards that blunt susceptibilities are very consistent with strong
  • propensities.
  • CHAPTER XI.
  • I HAD indeed had a very long talk with the crafty little politician, and
  • on regaining my quarters, I found that dinner was half over. To be late
  • at meals was against a standing rule of the establishment, and had it
  • been one of the Flemish ushers who thus entered after the removal of the
  • soup and the commencement of the first course, M. Pelet would probably
  • have greeted him with a public rebuke, and would certainly have mulcted
  • him both of soup and fish; as it was, that polite though partial
  • gentleman only shook his head, and as I took my place, unrolled my
  • napkin, and said my heretical grace to myself, he civilly despatched a
  • servant to the kitchen, to bring me a plate of “puree aux carottes”
  • (for this was a maigre-day), and before sending away the first course,
  • reserved for me a portion of the stock-fish of which it consisted.
  • Dinner being over, the boys rushed out for their evening play; Kint and
  • Vandam (the two ushers) of course followed them. Poor fellows! if they
  • had not looked so very heavy, so very soulless, so very indifferent to
  • all things in heaven above or in the earth beneath, I could have pitied
  • them greatly for the obligation they were under to trail after those
  • rough lads everywhere and at all times; even as it was, I felt disposed
  • to scout myself as a privileged prig when I turned to ascend to my
  • chamber, sure to find there, if not enjoyment, at least liberty; but
  • this evening (as had often happened before) I was to be still farther
  • distinguished.
  • “Eh bien, mauvais sujet!” said the voice of M. Pelet behind me, as I
  • set my foot on the first step of the stair, “ou allez-vous? Venez a la
  • salle-a-manger, que je vous gronde un peu.”
  • “I beg pardon, monsieur,” said I, as I followed him to his private
  • sitting-room, “for having returned so late--it was not my fault.”
  • “That is just what I want to know,” rejoined M. Pelet, as he ushered me
  • into the comfortable parlour with a good wood-fire--for the stove had
  • now been removed for the season. Having rung the bell he ordered “Coffee
  • for two,” and presently he and I were seated, almost in English comfort,
  • one on each side of the hearth, a little round table between us, with
  • a coffee-pot, a sugar-basin, and two large white china cups. While
  • M. Pelet employed himself in choosing a cigar from a box, my thoughts
  • reverted to the two outcast ushers, whose voices I could hear even now
  • crying hoarsely for order in the playground.
  • “C’est une grande responsabilite, que la surveillance,” observed I.
  • “Plait-il?” dit M. Pelet.
  • I remarked that I thought Messieurs Vandam and Kint must sometimes be a
  • little fatigued with their labours.
  • “Des betes de somme,--des betes de somme,” murmured scornfully the
  • director. Meantime I offered him his cup of coffee.
  • “Servez-vous mon garcon,” said he blandly, when I had put a couple of
  • huge lumps of continental sugar into his cup. “And now tell me why you
  • stayed so long at Mdlle. Reuter’s. I know that lessons conclude, in her
  • establishment as in mine, at four o’clock, and when you returned it was
  • past five.”
  • “Mdlle. wished to speak with me, monsieur.”
  • “Indeed! on what subject? if one may ask.”
  • “Mademoiselle talked about nothing, monsieur.”
  • “A fertile topic! and did she discourse thereon in the schoolroom,
  • before the pupils?”
  • “No; like you, monsieur, she asked me to walk into her parlour.”
  • “And Madame Reuter--the old duenna--my mother’s gossip, was there, of
  • course?”
  • “No, monsieur; I had the honour of being quite alone with mademoiselle.”
  • “C’est joli--cela,” observed M. Pelet, and he smiled and looked into the
  • fire.
  • “Honi soit qui mal y pense,” murmured I, significantly.
  • “Je connais un peu ma petite voisine--voyez-vous.”
  • “In that case, monsieur will be able to aid me in finding out what was
  • mademoiselle’s reason for making me sit before her sofa one mortal hour,
  • listening to the most copious and fluent dissertation on the merest
  • frivolities.”
  • “She was sounding your character.”
  • “I thought so, monsieur.”
  • “Did she find out your weak point?”
  • “What is my weak point?”
  • “Why, the sentimental. Any woman sinking her shaft deep enough, will
  • at last reach a fathomless spring of sensibility in thy breast,
  • Crimsworth.”
  • I felt the blood stir about my heart and rise warm to my cheek.
  • “Some women might, monsieur.”
  • “Is Mdlle. Reuter of the number? Come, speak frankly, mon fils; elle est
  • encore jeune, plus agee que toi peut-etre, mais juste assey pour unir
  • la tendresse d’une petite maman a l’amour d’une epouse devouee; n’est-ce
  • pas que cela t’irait superieurement?”
  • “No, monsieur; I should like my wife to be my wife, and not half my
  • mother.”
  • “She is then a little too old for you?”
  • “No, monsieur, not a day too old if she suited me in other things.”
  • “In what does she not suit you, William? She is personally agreeable, is
  • she not?”
  • “Very; her hair and complexion are just what I admire; and her turn of
  • form, though quite Belgian, is full of grace.”
  • “Bravo! and her face? her features? How do you like them?”
  • “A little harsh, especially her mouth.”
  • “Ah, yes! her mouth,” said M. Pelet, and he chuckled inwardly. “There is
  • character about her mouth--firmness--but she has a very pleasant smile;
  • don’t you think so?”
  • “Rather crafty.”
  • “True, but that expression of craft is owing to her eyebrows; have you
  • remarked her eyebrows?”
  • I answered that I had not.
  • “You have not seen her looking down then?” said he.
  • “No.”
  • “It is a treat, notwithstanding. Observe her when she has some knitting,
  • or some other woman’s work in hand, and sits the image of peace, calmly
  • intent on her needles and her silk, some discussion meantime going on
  • around her, in the course of which peculiarities of character are being
  • developed, or important interests canvassed; she takes no part in it;
  • her humble, feminine mind is wholly with her knitting; none of her
  • features move; she neither presumes to smile approval, nor frown
  • disapprobation; her little hands assiduously ply their unpretending
  • task; if she can only get this purse finished, or this bonnet-grec
  • completed, it is enough for her. If gentlemen approach her chair, a
  • deeper quiescence, a meeker modesty settles on her features, and clothes
  • her general mien; observe then her eyebrows, et dites-moi s’il n’y a pas
  • du chat dans l’un et du renard dans l’autre.”
  • “I will take careful notice the first opportunity,” said I.
  • “And then,” continued M. Pelet, “the eyelid will flicker, the
  • light-coloured lashes be lifted a second, and a blue eye, glancing out
  • from under the screen, will take its brief, sly, searching survey, and
  • retreat again.”
  • I smiled, and so did Pelet, and after a few minutes’ silence, I asked:
  • “Will she ever marry, do you think?”
  • “Marry! Will birds pair? Of course it is both her intention and
  • resolution to marry when she finds a suitable match, and no one is
  • better aware than herself of the sort of impression she is capable
  • of producing; no one likes better to captivate in a quiet way. I am
  • mistaken if she will not yet leave the print of her stealing steps on
  • thy heart, Crimsworth.”
  • “Of her steps? Confound it, no! My heart is not a plank to be walked
  • on.”
  • “But the soft touch of a patte de velours will do it no harm.”
  • “She offers me no patte de velours; she is all form and reserve with
  • me.”
  • “That to begin with; let respect be the foundation, affection the first
  • floor, love the superstructure; Mdlle. Reuter is a skilful architect.”
  • “And interest, M. Pelet--interest. Will not mademoiselle consider that
  • point?”
  • “Yes, yes, no doubt; it will be the cement between every stone. And now
  • we have discussed the directress, what of the pupils? N’y a-t-il pas de
  • belles etudes parmi ces jeunes tetes?”
  • “Studies of character? Yes; curious ones, at least, I imagine; but one
  • cannot divine much from a first interview.”
  • “Ah, you affect discretion; but tell me now, were you not a little
  • abashed before these blooming young creatures?”
  • “At first, yes; but I rallied and got through with all due sang-froid.”
  • “I don’t believe you.”
  • “It is true, notwithstanding. At first I thought them angels, but they
  • did not leave me long under that delusion; three of the eldest and
  • handsomest undertook the task of setting me right, and they managed
  • so cleverly that in five minutes I knew them, at least, for what they
  • were--three arrant coquettes.”
  • “Je les connais!” exclaimed M. Pelet. “Elles sont toujours au premier
  • rang a l’eglise et a la promenade; une blonde superbe, une jolie
  • espiegle, une belle brune.”
  • “Exactly.”
  • “Lovely creatures all of them--heads for artists; what a group they
  • would make, taken together! Eulalie (I know their names), with her
  • smooth braided hair and calm ivory brow. Hortense, with her rich chesnut
  • locks so luxuriantly knotted, plaited, twisted, as if she did not know
  • how to dispose of all their abundance, with her vermilion lips, damask
  • cheek, and roguish laughing eye. And Caroline de Blemont! Ah, there is
  • beauty! beauty in perfection. What a cloud of sable curls about the face
  • of a houri! What fascinating lips! What glorious black eyes! Your Byron
  • would have worshipped her, and you--you cold, frigid islander!--you
  • played the austere, the insensible in the presence of an Aphrodite so
  • exquisite?”
  • I might have laughed at the director’s enthusiasm had I believed
  • it real, but there was something in his tone which indicated got-up
  • raptures. I felt he was only affecting fervour in order to put me off my
  • guard, to induce me to come out in return, so I scarcely even smiled. He
  • went on:
  • “Confess, William, do not the mere good looks of Zoraide Reuter appear
  • dowdyish and commonplace compared with the splendid charms of some of
  • her pupils?”
  • The question discomposed me, but I now felt plainly that my principal
  • was endeavouring (for reasons best known to himself--at that time I
  • could not fathom them) to excite ideas and wishes in my mind alien to
  • what was right and honourable. The iniquity of the instigation proved
  • its antidote, and when he further added:--
  • “Each of those three beautiful girls will have a handsome fortune; and
  • with a little address, a gentlemanlike, intelligent young fellow like
  • you might make himself master of the hand, heart, and purse of any one
  • of the trio.”
  • I replied by a look and an interrogative “Monsieur?” which startled him.
  • He laughed a forced laugh, affirmed that he had only been joking, and
  • demanded whether I could possibly have thought him in earnest. Just then
  • the bell rang; the play-hour was over; it was an evening on which M.
  • Pelet was accustomed to read passages from the drama and the belles
  • lettres to his pupils. He did not wait for my answer, but rising, left
  • the room, humming as he went some gay strain of Beranger’s.
  • CHAPTER XII.
  • DAILY, as I continued my attendance at the seminary of Mdlle. Reuter,
  • did I find fresh occasions to compare the ideal with the real. What
  • had I known of female character previously to my arrival at Brussels?
  • Precious little. And what was my notion of it? Something vague, slight,
  • gauzy, glittering; now when I came in contact with it I found it to be
  • a palpable substance enough; very hard too sometimes, and often heavy;
  • there was metal in it, both lead and iron.
  • Let the idealists, the dreamers about earthly angel and human flowers,
  • just look here while I open my portfolio and show them a sketch or
  • two, pencilled after nature. I took these sketches in the second-class
  • schoolroom of Mdlle. Reuter’s establishment, where about a hundred
  • specimens of the genus “jeune fille” collected together offered a
  • fertile variety of subject. A miscellaneous assortment they were,
  • differing both in caste and country; as I sat on my estrade and glanced
  • over the long range of desks, I had under my eye French, English,
  • Belgians, Austrians, and Prussians. The majority belonged to the class
  • bourgeois; but there were many countesses, there were the daughters of
  • two generals and of several colonels, captains, and government EMPLOYES;
  • these ladies sat side by side with young females destined to be
  • demoiselles de magasins, and with some Flamandes, genuine aborigines of
  • the country. In dress all were nearly similar, and in manners there was
  • small difference; exceptions there were to the general rule, but the
  • majority gave the tone to the establishment, and that tone was rough,
  • boisterous, masked by a point-blank disregard of all forbearance towards
  • each other or their teachers; an eager pursuit by each individual of her
  • own interest and convenience; and a coarse indifference to the interest
  • and convenience of every one else. Most of them could lie with audacity
  • when it appeared advantageous to do so. All understood the art of
  • speaking fair when a point was to be gained, and could with consummate
  • skill and at a moment’s notice turn the cold shoulder the instant
  • civility ceased to be profitable. Very little open quarrelling ever took
  • place amongst them; but backbiting and talebearing were universal. Close
  • friendships were forbidden by the rules of the school, and no one girl
  • seemed to cultivate more regard for another than was just necessary to
  • secure a companion when solitude would have been irksome. They were each
  • and all supposed to have been reared in utter unconsciousness of vice.
  • The precautions used to keep them ignorant, if not innocent, were
  • innumerable. How was it, then, that scarcely one of those girls having
  • attained the age of fourteen could look a man in the face with modesty
  • and propriety? An air of bold, impudent flirtation, or a loose, silly
  • leer, was sure to answer the most ordinary glance from a masculine eye.
  • I know nothing of the arcana of the Roman Catholic religion, and I
  • am not a bigot in matters of theology, but I suspect the root of this
  • precocious impurity, so obvious, so general in Popish countries, is to
  • be found in the discipline, if not the doctrines of the Church of Rome.
  • I record what I have seen: these girls belonged to what are called the
  • respectable ranks of society; they had all been carefully brought up,
  • yet was the mass of them mentally depraved. So much for the general
  • view: now for one or two selected specimens.
  • The first picture is a full length of Aurelia Koslow, a German fraulein,
  • or rather a half-breed between German and Russian. She is eighteen years
  • of age, and has been sent to Brussels to finish her education; she is
  • of middle size, stiffly made, body long, legs short, bust much developed
  • but not compactly moulded, waist disproportionately compressed by an
  • inhumanly braced corset, dress carefully arranged, large feet tortured
  • into small bottines, head small, hair smoothed, braided, oiled, and
  • gummed to perfection; very low forehead, very diminutive and vindictive
  • grey eyes, somewhat Tartar features, rather flat nose, rather high-cheek
  • bones, yet the ensemble not positively ugly; tolerably good complexion.
  • So much for person. As to mind, deplorably ignorant and ill-informed:
  • incapable of writing or speaking correctly even German, her native
  • tongue, a dunce in French, and her attempts at learning English a mere
  • farce, yet she has been at school twelve years; but as she invariably
  • gets her exercises, of every description, done by a fellow pupil, and
  • reads her lessons off a book concealed in her lap, it is not wonderful
  • that her progress has been so snail-like. I do not know what Aurelia’s
  • daily habits of life are, because I have not the opportunity of
  • observing her at all times; but from what I see of the state of her
  • desk, books, and papers, I should say she is slovenly and even dirty;
  • her outward dress, as I have said, is well attended to, but in passing
  • behind her bench, I have remarked that her neck is gray for want of
  • washing, and her hair, so glossy with gum and grease, is not such as
  • one feels tempted to pass the hand over, much less to run the fingers
  • through. Aurelia’s conduct in class, at least when I am present, is
  • something extraordinary, considered as an index of girlish innocence.
  • The moment I enter the room, she nudges her next neighbour and indulges
  • in a half-suppressed laugh. As I take my seat on the estrade, she
  • fixes her eye on me; she seems resolved to attract, and, if possible,
  • monopolize my notice: to this end she launches at me all sorts of looks,
  • languishing, provoking, leering, laughing. As I am found quite proof
  • against this sort of artillery--for we scorn what, unasked, is lavishly
  • offered--she has recourse to the expedient of making noises; sometimes
  • she sighs, sometimes groans, sometimes utters inarticulate sounds, for
  • which language has no name. If, in walking up the schoolroom, I pass
  • near her, she puts out her foot that it may touch mine; if I do not
  • happen to observe the manoeuvre, and my boot comes in contact with her
  • brodequin, she affects to fall into convulsions of suppressed laughter;
  • if I notice the snare and avoid it, she expresses her mortification in
  • sullen muttering, where I hear myself abused in bad French, pronounced
  • with an intolerable Low German accent.
  • Not far from Mdlle. Koslow sits another young lady by name Adele
  • Dronsart: this is a Belgian, rather low of stature, in form heavy,
  • with broad waist, short neck and limbs, good red and white complexion,
  • features well chiselled and regular, well-cut eyes of a clear brown
  • colour, light brown hair, good teeth, age not much above fifteen, but as
  • full-grown as a stout young Englishwoman of twenty. This portrait gives
  • the idea of a somewhat dumpy but good-looking damsel, does it not? Well,
  • when I looked along the row of young heads, my eye generally stopped at
  • this of Adele’s; her gaze was ever waiting for mine, and it frequently
  • succeeded in arresting it. She was an unnatural-looking being--so young,
  • fresh, blooming, yet so Gorgon-like. Suspicion, sullen ill-temper were
  • on her forehead, vicious propensities in her eye, envy and panther-like
  • deceit about her mouth. In general she sat very still; her massive shape
  • looked as if it could not bend much, nor did her large head--so broad
  • at the base, so narrow towards the top--seem made to turn readily on her
  • short neck. She had but two varieties of expression; the prevalent one
  • a forbidding, dissatisfied scowl, varied sometimes by a most pernicious
  • and perfidious smile. She was shunned by her fellow-pupils, for, bad as
  • many of them were, few were as bad as she.
  • Aurelia and Adele were in the first division of the second class; the
  • second division was headed by a pensionnaire named Juanna Trista. This
  • girl was of mixed Belgian and Spanish origin; her Flemish mother was
  • dead, her Catalonian father was a merchant residing in the ---- Isles,
  • where Juanna had been born and whence she was sent to Europe to be
  • educated. I wonder that any one, looking at that girl’s head and
  • countenance, would have received her under their roof. She had precisely
  • the same shape of skull as Pope Alexander the Sixth; her organs
  • of benevolence, veneration, conscientiousness, adhesiveness, were
  • singularly small, those of self-esteem, firmness, destructiveness,
  • combativeness, preposterously large; her head sloped up in the penthouse
  • shape, was contracted about the forehead, and prominent behind; she
  • had rather good, though large and marked features; her temperament was
  • fibrous and bilious, her complexion pale and dark, hair and eyes black,
  • form angular and rigid but proportionate, age fifteen.
  • Juanna was not very thin, but she had a gaunt visage, and her “regard”
  • was fierce and hungry; narrow as was her brow, it presented space enough
  • for the legible graving of two words, Mutiny and Hate; in some one of
  • her other lineaments I think the eye--cowardice had also its distinct
  • cipher. Mdlle. Trista thought fit to trouble my first lessons with a
  • coarse work-day sort of turbulence; she made noises with her mouth like
  • a horse, she ejected her saliva, she uttered brutal expressions; behind
  • and below her were seated a band of very vulgar, inferior-looking
  • Flamandes, including two or three examples of that deformity of person
  • and imbecility of intellect whose frequency in the Low Countries would
  • seem to furnish proof that the climate is such as to induce degeneracy
  • of the human mind and body; these, I soon found, were completely under
  • her influence, and with their aid she got up and sustained a swinish
  • tumult, which I was constrained at last to quell by ordering her and two
  • of her tools to rise from their seats, and, having kept them standing
  • five minutes, turning them bodily out of the schoolroom: the accomplices
  • into a large place adjoining called the grands salle; the principal
  • into a cabinet, of which I closed the door and pocketed the key. This
  • judgment I executed in the presence of Mdlle. Reuter, who looked much
  • aghast at beholding so decided a proceeding--the most severe that had
  • ever been ventured on in her establishment. Her look of affright I
  • answered with one of composure, and finally with a smile, which perhaps
  • flattered, and certainly soothed her. Juanna Trista remained in Europe
  • long enough to repay, by malevolence and ingratitude, all who had ever
  • done her a good turn; and she then went to join her father in the----
  • Isles, exulting in the thought that she should there have slaves, whom,
  • as she said, she could kick and strike at will.
  • These three pictures are from the life. I possess others, as marked and
  • as little agreeable, but I will spare my reader the exhibition of them.
  • Doubtless it will be thought that I ought now, by way of contrast, to
  • show something charming; some gentle virgin head, circled with a halo,
  • some sweet personification of innocence, clasping the dove of peace to
  • her bosom. No: I saw nothing of the sort, and therefore cannot portray
  • it. The pupil in the school possessing the happiest disposition was
  • a young girl from the country, Louise Path; she was sufficiently
  • benevolent and obliging, but not well taught nor well mannered;
  • moreover, the plague-spot of dissimulation was in her also; honour and
  • principle were unknown to her, she had scarcely heard their names. The
  • least exceptionable pupil was the poor little Sylvie I have mentioned
  • once before. Sylvie was gentle in manners, intelligent in mind; she was
  • even sincere, as far as her religion would permit her to be so, but her
  • physical organization was defective; weak health stunted her growth and
  • chilled her spirits, and then, destined as she was for the cloister,
  • her whole soul was warped to a conventual bias, and in the tame, trained
  • subjection of her manner, one read that she had already prepared herself
  • for her future course of life, by giving up her independence of thought
  • and action into the hands of some despotic confessor. She permitted
  • herself no original opinion, no preference of companion or employment;
  • in everything she was guided by another. With a pale, passive, automaton
  • air, she went about all day long doing what she was bid; never what she
  • liked, or what, from innate conviction, she thought it right to do. The
  • poor little future religieuse had been early taught to make the dictates
  • of her own reason and conscience quite subordinate to the will of
  • her spiritual director. She was the model pupil of Mdlle. Reuter’s
  • establishment; pale, blighted image, where life lingered feebly, but
  • whence the soul had been conjured by Romish wizard-craft!
  • A few English pupils there were in this school, and these might be
  • divided into two classes. 1st. The continental English--the daughters
  • chiefly of broken adventurers, whom debt or dishonour had driven from
  • their own country. These poor girls had never known the advantages
  • of settled homes, decorous example, or honest Protestant education;
  • resident a few months now in one Catholic school, now in another, as
  • their parents wandered from land to land--from France to Germany, from
  • Germany to Belgium--they had picked up some scanty instruction, many bad
  • habits, losing every notion even of the first elements of religion and
  • morals, and acquiring an imbecile indifference to every sentiment that
  • can elevate humanity; they were distinguishable by an habitual look
  • of sullen dejection, the result of crushed self-respect and constant
  • browbeating from their Popish fellow-pupils, who hated them as English,
  • and scorned them as heretics.
  • The second class were British English. Of these I did not encounter half
  • a dozen during the whole time of my attendance at the seminary; their
  • characteristics were clean but careless dress, ill-arranged hair
  • (compared with the tight and trim foreigners), erect carriage, flexible
  • figures, white and taper hands, features more irregular, but also more
  • intellectual than those of the Belgians, grave and modest countenances,
  • a general air of native propriety and decency; by this last circumstance
  • alone I could at a glance distinguish the daughter of Albion and
  • nursling of Protestantism from the foster-child of Rome, the PROTEGEE
  • of Jesuistry: proud, too, was the aspect of these British girls; at once
  • envied and ridiculed by their continental associates, they warded off
  • insult with austere civility, and met hate with mute disdain; they
  • eschewed company-keeping, and in the midst of numbers seemed to dwell
  • isolated.
  • The teachers presiding over this mixed multitude were three in number,
  • all French--their names Mdlles. Zephyrine, Pelagie, and Suzette; the two
  • last were commonplace personages enough; their look was ordinary,
  • their manner was ordinary, their temper was ordinary, their thoughts,
  • feelings, and views were all ordinary--were I to write a chapter on the
  • subject I could not elucidate it further. Zephyrine was somewhat more
  • distinguished in appearance and deportment than Pelagie and Suzette,
  • but in character genuine Parisian coquette, perfidious, mercenary, and
  • dry-hearted. A fourth maitresse I sometimes saw who seemed to come daily
  • to teach needlework, or netting, or lace-mending, or some such flimsy
  • art; but of her I never had more than a passing glimpse, as she sat in
  • the CARRE, with her frames and some dozen of the elder pupils about her,
  • consequently I had no opportunity of studying her character, or even of
  • observing her person much; the latter, I remarked, had a very English
  • air for a maitresse, otherwise it was not striking; of character I
  • should think she possessed but little, as her pupils seemed constantly
  • “en revolte” against her authority. She did not reside in the house; her
  • name, I think, was Mdlle. Henri.
  • Amidst this assemblage of all that was insignificant and defective, much
  • that was vicious and repulsive (by that last epithet many would have
  • described the two or three stiff, silent, decently behaved, ill-dressed
  • British girls), the sensible, sagacious, affable directress shone like a
  • steady star over a marsh full of Jack-o’-lanthorns; profoundly aware
  • of her superiority, she derived an inward bliss from that consciousness
  • which sustained her under all the care and responsibility inseparable
  • from her position; it kept her temper calm, her brow smooth, her manner
  • tranquil. She liked--as who would not?--on entering the school-room,
  • to feel that her sole presence sufficed to diffuse that order and
  • quiet which all the remonstrances, and even commands, of her underlings
  • frequently failed to enforce; she liked to stand in comparison, or
  • rather--contrast, with those who surrounded her, and to know that in
  • personal as well as mental advantages, she bore away the undisputed
  • palm of preference--(the three teachers were all plain.) Her pupils she
  • managed with such indulgence and address, taking always on herself the
  • office of recompenser and eulogist, and abandoning to her subalterns
  • every invidious task of blame and punishment, that they all regarded her
  • with deference, if not with affection; her teachers did not love her,
  • but they submitted because they were her inferiors in everything; the
  • various masters who attended her school were each and all in some way
  • or other under her influence; over one she had acquired power by her
  • skilful management of his bad temper; over another by little attentions
  • to his petty caprices; a third she had subdued by flattery; a fourth--a
  • timid man--she kept in awe by a sort of austere decision of mien; me,
  • she still watched, still tried by the most ingenious tests--she roved
  • round me, baffled, yet persevering; I believe she thought I was like
  • a smooth and bare precipice, which offered neither jutting stone nor
  • tree-root, nor tuft of grass to aid the climber. Now she flattered
  • with exquisite tact, now she moralized, now she tried how far I was
  • accessible to mercenary motives, then she disported on the brink of
  • affection--knowing that some men are won by weakness--anon, she talked
  • excellent sense, aware that others have the folly to admire judgment.
  • I found it at once pleasant and easy to evade all these efforts; it was
  • sweet, when she thought me nearly won, to turn round and to smile in
  • her very eyes, half scornfully, and then to witness her scarcely veiled,
  • though mute mortification. Still she persevered, and at last, I am bound
  • to confess it, her finger, essaying, proving every atom of the casket,
  • touched its secret spring, and for a moment the lid sprung open; she
  • laid her hand on the jewel within; whether she stole and broke it, or
  • whether the lid shut again with a snap on her fingers, read on, and you
  • shall know.
  • It happened that I came one day to give a lesson when I was indisposed;
  • I had a bad cold and a cough; two hours’ incessant talking left me very
  • hoarse and tired; as I quitted the schoolroom, and was passing along the
  • corridor, I met Mdlle. Reuter; she remarked, with an anxious air, that
  • I looked very pale and tired. “Yes,” I said, “I was fatigued;” and then,
  • with increased interest, she rejoined, “You shall not go away till you
  • have had some refreshment.” She persuaded me to step into the parlour,
  • and was very kind and gentle while I stayed. The next day she was kinder
  • still; she came herself into the class to see that the windows were
  • closed, and that there was no draught; she exhorted me with friendly
  • earnestness not to over-exert myself; when I went away, she gave me
  • her hand unasked, and I could not but mark, by a respectful and gentle
  • pressure, that I was sensible of the favour, and grateful for it. My
  • modest demonstration kindled a little merry smile on her countenance;
  • I thought her almost charming. During the remainder of the evening, my
  • mind was full of impatience for the afternoon of the next day to arrive,
  • that I might see her again.
  • I was not disappointed, for she sat in the class during the whole of my
  • subsequent lesson, and often looked at me almost with affection. At four
  • o’clock she accompanied me out of the schoolroom, asking with solicitude
  • after my health, then scolding me sweetly because I spoke too loud and
  • gave myself too much trouble; I stopped at the glass-door which led into
  • the garden, to hear her lecture to the end; the door was open, it was a
  • very fine day, and while I listened to the soothing reprimand, I looked
  • at the sunshine and flowers, and felt very happy. The day-scholars began
  • to pour from the schoolrooms into the passage.
  • “Will you go into the garden a minute or two,” asked she, “till they are
  • gone?”
  • I descended the steps without answering, but I looked back as much as to
  • say--
  • “You will come with me?”
  • In another minute I and the directress were walking side by side down
  • the alley bordered with fruit-trees, whose white blossoms were then in
  • full blow as well as their tender green leaves. The sky was blue, the
  • air still, the May afternoon was full of brightness and fragrance.
  • Released from the stifling class, surrounded with flowers and foliage,
  • with a pleasing, smiling, affable woman at my side--how did I feel? Why,
  • very enviably. It seemed as if the romantic visions my imagination had
  • suggested of this garden, while it was yet hidden from me by the jealous
  • boards, were more than realized; and, when a turn in the alley shut out
  • the view of the house, and some tall shrubs excluded M. Pelet’s
  • mansion, and screened us momentarily from the other houses, rising
  • amphitheatre-like round this green spot, I gave my arm to Mdlle. Reuter,
  • and led her to a garden-chair, nestled under some lilacs near. She sat
  • down; I took my place at her side. She went on talking to me with that
  • ease which communicates ease, and, as I listened, a revelation dawned
  • in my mind that I was on the brink of falling in love. The dinner-bell
  • rang, both at her house and M. Pelet’s; we were obliged to part; I
  • detained her a moment as she was moving away.
  • “I want something,” said I.
  • “What?” asked Zoraide naively.
  • “Only a flower.”
  • “Gather it then--or two, or twenty, if you like.”
  • “No--one will do--but you must gather it, and give it to me.”
  • “What a caprice!” she exclaimed, but she raised herself on her tip-toes,
  • and, plucking a beautiful branch of lilac, offered it to me with grace.
  • I took it, and went away, satisfied for the present, and hopeful for the
  • future.
  • Certainly that May day was a lovely one, and it closed in moonlight
  • night of summer warmth and serenity. I remember this well; for, having
  • sat up late that evening, correcting devoirs, and feeling weary and
  • a little oppressed with the closeness of my small room, I opened the
  • often-mentioned boarded window, whose boards, however, I had persuaded
  • old Madame Pelet to have removed since I had filled the post of
  • professor in the pensionnat de demoiselles, as, from that time, it
  • was no longer “inconvenient” for me to overlook my own pupils at their
  • sports. I sat down in the window-seat, rested my arm on the sill,
  • and leaned out: above me was the clear-obscure of a cloudless
  • night sky--splendid moonlight subdued the tremulous sparkle of the
  • stars--below lay the garden, varied with silvery lustre and deep shade,
  • and all fresh with dew--a grateful perfume exhaled from the closed
  • blossoms of the fruit-trees--not a leaf stirred, the night was
  • breezeless. My window looked directly down upon a certain walk of Mdlle.
  • Reuter’s garden, called “l’allee defendue,” so named because the pupils
  • were forbidden to enter it on account of its proximity to the boys’
  • school. It was here that the lilacs and laburnums grew especially thick;
  • this was the most sheltered nook in the enclosure, its shrubs screened
  • the garden-chair where that afternoon I had sat with the young
  • directress. I need not say that my thoughts were chiefly with her as
  • I leaned from the lattice, and let my eye roam, now over the walks and
  • borders of the garden, now along the many-windowed front of the house
  • which rose white beyond the masses of foliage. I wondered in what part
  • of the building was situated her apartment; and a single light, shining
  • through the persiennes of one croisee, seemed to direct me to it.
  • “She watches late,” thought I, “for it must be now near midnight. She
  • is a fascinating little woman,” I continued in voiceless soliloquy; “her
  • image forms a pleasant picture in memory; I know she is not what the
  • world calls pretty--no matter, there is harmony in her aspect, and I
  • like it; her brown hair, her blue eye, the freshness of her cheek, the
  • whiteness of her neck, all suit my taste. Then I respect her talent;
  • the idea of marrying a doll or a fool was always abhorrent to me: I know
  • that a pretty doll, a fair fool, might do well enough for the honeymoon;
  • but when passion cooled, how dreadful to find a lump of wax and wood
  • laid in my bosom, a half idiot clasped in my arms, and to remember that
  • I had made of this my equal--nay, my idol--to know that I must pass the
  • rest of my dreary life with a creature incapable of understanding what
  • I said, of appreciating what I thought, or of sympathizing with what I
  • felt! “Now, Zoraide Reuter,” thought I, “has tact, CARACTERE, judgment,
  • discretion; has she heart? What a good, simple little smile played
  • about her lips when she gave me the branch of lilacs! I have thought her
  • crafty, dissembling, interested sometimes, it is true; but may not much
  • that looks like cunning and dissimulation in her conduct be only
  • the efforts made by a bland temper to traverse quietly perplexing
  • difficulties? And as to interest, she wishes to make her way in the
  • world, no doubt, and who can blame her? Even if she be truly deficient
  • in sound principle, is it not rather her misfortune than her fault? She
  • has been brought up a Catholic: had she been born an Englishwoman, and
  • reared a Protestant, might she not have added straight integrity to
  • all her other excellences? Supposing she were to marry an English and
  • Protestant husband, would she not, rational, sensible as she is, quickly
  • acknowledge the superiority of right over expediency, honesty over
  • policy? It would be worth a man’s while to try the experiment; to-morrow
  • I will renew my observations. She knows that I watch her: how calm she
  • is under scrutiny! it seems rather to gratify than annoy her.” Here a
  • strain of music stole in upon my monologue, and suspended it; it was
  • a bugle, very skilfully played, in the neighbourhood of the park, I
  • thought, or on the Place Royale. So sweet were the tones, so subduing
  • their effect at that hour, in the midst of silence and under the
  • quiet reign of moonlight, I ceased to think, that I might listen more
  • intently. The strain retreated, its sound waxed fainter and was soon
  • gone; my ear prepared to repose on the absolute hush of midnight once
  • more. No. What murmur was that which, low, and yet near and approaching
  • nearer, frustrated the expectation of total silence? It was some one
  • conversing--yes, evidently, an audible, though subdued voice spoke in
  • the garden immediately below me. Another answered; the first voice was
  • that of a man, the second that of a woman; and a man and a woman I saw
  • coming slowly down the alley. Their forms were at first in shade, I
  • could but discern a dusk outline of each, but a ray of moonlight met
  • them at the termination of the walk, when they were under my very nose,
  • and revealed very plainly, very unequivocally, Mdlle. Zoraide Reuter,
  • arm-in-arm, or hand-in-hand (I forget which) with my principal,
  • confidant, and counsellor, M. Francois Pelet. And M. Pelet was saying--
  • “A quand donc le jour des noces, ma bien-aimee?”
  • And Mdlle. Reuter answered--
  • “Mais, Francois, tu sais bien qu’il me serait impossible de me marier
  • avant les vacances.”
  • “June, July, August, a whole quarter!” exclaimed the director. “How can
  • I wait so long?--I who am ready, even now, to expire at your feet with
  • impatience!”
  • “Ah! if you die, the whole affair will be settled without any trouble
  • about notaries and contracts; I shall only have to order a slight
  • mourning dress, which will be much sooner prepared than the nuptial
  • trousseau.”
  • “Cruel Zoraide! you laugh at the distress of one who loves you so
  • devotedly as I do: my torment is your sport; you scruple not to stretch
  • my soul on the rack of jealousy; for, deny it as you will, I am certain
  • you have cast encouraging glances on that school-boy, Crimsworth; he has
  • presumed to fall in love, which he dared not have done unless you had
  • given him room to hope.”
  • “What do you say, Francois? Do you say Crimsworth is in love with me?”
  • “Over head and ears.”
  • “Has he told you so?”
  • “No--but I see it in his face: he blushes whenever your name is
  • mentioned.” A little laugh of exulting coquetry announced Mdlle.
  • Reuter’s gratification at this piece of intelligence (which was a lie,
  • by-the-by--I had never been so far gone as that, after all). M. Pelet
  • proceeded to ask what she intended to do with me, intimating pretty
  • plainly, and not very gallantly, that it was nonsense for her to think
  • of taking such a “blanc-bec” as a husband, since she must be at least
  • ten years older than I (was she then thirty-two? I should not have
  • thought it). I heard her disclaim any intentions on the subject--the
  • director, however, still pressed her to give a definite answer.
  • “Francois,” said she, “you are jealous,” and still she laughed; then, as
  • if suddenly recollecting that this coquetry was not consistent with the
  • character for modest dignity she wished to establish, she proceeded,
  • in a demure voice: “Truly, my dear Francois, I will not deny that this
  • young Englishman may have made some attempts to ingratiate himself with
  • me; but, so far from giving him any encouragement, I have always treated
  • him with as much reserve as it was possible to combine with civility;
  • affianced as I am to you, I would give no man false hopes; believe me,
  • dear friend.” Still Pelet uttered murmurs of distrust--so I judged, at
  • least, from her reply.
  • “What folly! How could I prefer an unknown foreigner to you? And
  • then--not to flatter your vanity--Crimsworth could not bear comparison
  • with you either physically or mentally; he is not a handsome man at all;
  • some may call him gentleman-like and intelligent-looking, but for my
  • part--”
  • The rest of the sentence was lost in the distance, as the pair, rising
  • from the chair in which they had been seated, moved away. I waited their
  • return, but soon the opening and shutting of a door informed me that
  • they had re-entered the house; I listened a little longer, all was
  • perfectly still; I listened more than an hour--at last I heard M. Pelet
  • come in and ascend to his chamber. Glancing once more towards the long
  • front of the garden-house, I perceived that its solitary light was
  • at length extinguished; so, for a time, was my faith in love and
  • friendship. I went to bed, but something feverish and fiery had got into
  • my veins which prevented me from sleeping much that night.
  • CHAPTER XIII.
  • NEXT morning I rose with the dawn, and having dressed myself and stood
  • half-an-hour, my elbow leaning on the chest of drawers, considering what
  • means I should adopt to restore my spirits, fagged with sleeplessness,
  • to their ordinary tone--for I had no intention of getting up a scene
  • with M. Pelet, reproaching him with perfidy, sending him a challenge, or
  • performing other gambadoes of the sort--I hit at last on the
  • expedient of walking out in the cool of the morning to a neighbouring
  • establishment of baths, and treating myself to a bracing plunge.
  • The remedy produced the desired effect. I came back at seven o’clock
  • steadied and invigorated, and was able to greet M. Pelet, when he
  • entered to breakfast, with an unchanged and tranquil countenance; even
  • a cordial offering of the hand and the flattering appellation of “mon
  • fils,” pronounced in that caressing tone with which Monsieur had, of
  • late days especially, been accustomed to address me, did not elicit any
  • external sign of the feeling which, though subdued, still glowed at
  • my heart. Not that I nursed vengeance--no; but the sense of insult and
  • treachery lived in me like a kindling, though as yet smothered coal. God
  • knows I am not by nature vindictive; I would not hurt a man because I
  • can no longer trust or like him; but neither my reason nor feelings
  • are of the vacillating order--they are not of that sand-like sort where
  • impressions, if soon made, are as soon effaced. Once convinced that my
  • friend’s disposition is incompatible with my own, once assured that he
  • is indelibly stained with certain defects obnoxious to my principles,
  • and I dissolve the connection. I did so with Edward. As to Pelet, the
  • discovery was yet new; should I act thus with him? It was the question I
  • placed before my mind as I stirred my cup of coffee with a half-pistolet
  • (we never had spoons), Pelet meantime being seated opposite, his pallid
  • face looking as knowing and more haggard than usual, his blue eye
  • turned, now sternly on his boys and ushers, and now graciously on me.
  • “Circumstances must guide me,” said I; and meeting Pelet’s false glance
  • and insinuating smile, I thanked heaven that I had last night opened
  • my window and read by the light of a full moon the true meaning of that
  • guileful countenance. I felt half his master, because the reality of
  • his nature was now known to me; smile and flatter as he would, I saw his
  • soul lurk behind his smile, and heard in every one of his smooth phrases
  • a voice interpreting their treacherous import.
  • But Zoraide Reuter? Of course her defection had cut me to the quick?
  • That stint must have gone too deep for any consolations of philosophy
  • to be available in curing its smart? Not at all. The night fever over,
  • I looked about for balm to that wound also, and found some nearer home
  • than at Gilead. Reason was my physician; she began by proving that the
  • prize I had missed was of little value: she admitted that, physically,
  • Zoraide might have suited me, but affirmed that our souls were not in
  • harmony, and that discord must have resulted from the union of her mind
  • with mine. She then insisted on the suppression of all repining,
  • and commanded me rather to rejoice that I had escaped a snare. Her
  • medicament did me good. I felt its strengthening effect when I met the
  • directress the next day; its stringent operation on the nerves suffered
  • no trembling, no faltering; it enabled me to face her with firmness,
  • to pass her with ease. She had held out her hand to me--that I did not
  • choose to see. She had greeted me with a charming smile--it fell on my
  • heart like light on stone. I passed on to the estrade, she followed me;
  • her eye, fastened on my face, demanded of every feature the meaning of
  • my changed and careless manner. “I will give her an answer,” thought I;
  • and, meeting her gaze full, arresting, fixing her glance, I shot into
  • her eyes, from my own, a look, where there was no respect, no love,
  • no tenderness, no gallantry; where the strictest analysis could detect
  • nothing but scorn, hardihood, irony. I made her bear it, and feel it;
  • her steady countenance did not change, but her colour rose, and she
  • approached me as if fascinated. She stepped on to the estrade, and
  • stood close by my side; she had nothing to say. I would not relieve her
  • embarrassment, and negligently turned over the leaves of a book.
  • “I hope you feel quite recovered to-day,” at last she said, in a low
  • tone.
  • “And I, mademoiselle, hope that you took no cold last night in
  • consequence of your late walk in the garden.”
  • Quick enough of comprehension, she understood me directly; her face
  • became a little blanched--a very little--but no muscle in her rather
  • marked features moved; and, calm and self-possessed, she retired from
  • the estrade, taking her seat quietly at a little distance, and occupying
  • herself with netting a purse. I proceeded to give my lesson; it was a
  • “Composition,” i.e., I dictated certain general questions, of which the
  • pupils were to compose the answers from memory, access to books being
  • forbidden. While Mdlle. Eulalie, Hortense, Caroline, &c., were pondering
  • over the string of rather abstruse grammatical interrogatories I had
  • propounded, I was at liberty to employ the vacant half hour in further
  • observing the directress herself. The green silk purse was progressing
  • fast in her hands; her eyes were bent upon it; her attitude, as she
  • sat netting within two yards of me, was still yet guarded; in her whole
  • person were expressed at once, and with equal clearness, vigilance and
  • repose--a rare union! Looking at her, I was forced, as I had often been
  • before, to offer her good sense, her wondrous self-control, the tribute
  • of involuntary admiration. She had felt that I had withdrawn from her
  • my esteem; she had seen contempt and coldness in my eye, and to her, who
  • coveted the approbation of all around her, who thirsted after universal
  • good opinion, such discovery must have been an acute wound. I had
  • witnessed its effect in the momentary pallor of her cheek--cheek unused
  • to vary; yet how quickly, by dint of self-control, had she recovered
  • her composure! With what quiet dignity she now sat, almost at my side,
  • sustained by her sound and vigorous sense; no trembling in her somewhat
  • lengthened, though shrewd upper lip, no coward shame on her austere
  • forehead!
  • “There is metal there,” I said, as I gazed. “Would that there were fire
  • also, living ardour to make the steel glow--then I could love her.”
  • Presently I discovered that she knew I was watching her, for she stirred
  • not, she lifted not her crafty eyelid; she had glanced down from her
  • netting to her small foot, peeping from the soft folds of her purple
  • merino gown; thence her eye reverted to her hand, ivory white, with a
  • bright garnet ring on the forefinger, and a light frill of lace round
  • the wrist; with a scarcely perceptible movement she turned her head,
  • causing her nut-brown curls to wave gracefully. In these slight signs
  • I read that the wish of her heart, the design of her brain, was to lure
  • back the game she had scared. A little incident gave her the opportunity
  • of addressing me again.
  • While all was silence in the class--silence, but for the rustling of
  • copy-books and the travelling of pens over their pages--a leaf of the
  • large folding-door, opening from the hall, unclosed, admitting a
  • pupil who, after making a hasty obeisance, ensconced herself with some
  • appearance of trepidation, probably occasioned by her entering so
  • late, in a vacant seat at the desk nearest the door. Being seated, she
  • proceeded, still with an air of hurry and embarrassment, to open her
  • cabas, to take out her books; and, while I was waiting for her to look
  • up, in order to make out her identity--for, shortsighted as I was, I had
  • not recognized her at her entrance--Mdlle. Reuter, leaving her chair,
  • approached the estrade.
  • “Monsieur Creemsvort,” said she, in a whisper: for when the schoolrooms
  • were silent, the directress always moved with velvet tread, and spoke
  • in the most subdued key, enforcing order and stillness fully as much
  • by example as precept: “Monsieur Creemsvort, that young person, who has
  • just entered, wishes to have the advantage of taking lessons with you in
  • English; she is not a pupil of the house; she is, indeed, in one sense,
  • a teacher, for she gives instruction in lace-mending, and in little
  • varieties of ornamental needle-work. She very properly proposes to
  • qualify herself for a higher department of education, and has asked
  • permission to attend your lessons, in order to perfect her knowledge
  • of English, in which language she has, I believe, already made
  • some progress; of course it is my wish to aid her in an effort
  • so praiseworthy; you will permit her then to benefit by your
  • instruction--n’est ce pas, monsieur?” And Mdlle. Reuter’s eyes were
  • raised to mine with a look at once naive, benign, and beseeching.
  • I replied, “Of course,” very laconically, almost abruptly.
  • “Another word,” she said, with softness: “Mdlle. Henri has not received
  • a regular education; perhaps her natural talents are not of the highest
  • order: but I can assure you of the excellence of her intentions, and
  • even of the amiability of her disposition. Monsieur will then, I am
  • sure, have the goodness to be considerate with her at first, and not
  • expose her backwardness, her inevitable deficiencies, before the young
  • ladies, who, in a sense, are her pupils. Will Monsieur Creemsvort favour
  • me by attending to this hint?” I nodded. She continued with subdued
  • earnestness--
  • “Pardon me, monsieur, if I venture to add that what I have just said is
  • of importance to the poor girl; she already experiences great difficulty
  • in impressing these giddy young things with a due degree of deference
  • for her authority, and should that difficulty be increased by new
  • discoveries of her incapacity, she might find her position in my
  • establishment too painful to be retained; a circumstance I should much
  • regret for her sake, as she can ill afford to lose the profits of her
  • occupation here.”
  • Mdlle. Reuter possessed marvellous tact; but tact the most exclusive,
  • unsupported by sincerity, will sometimes fail of its effect; thus, on
  • this occasion, the longer she preached about the necessity of being
  • indulgent to the governess pupil, the more impatient I felt as I
  • listened. I discerned so clearly that while her professed motive was a
  • wish to aid the dull, though well-meaning Mdlle. Henri, her real one
  • was no other than a design to impress me with an idea of her own exalted
  • goodness and tender considerateness; so having again hastily nodded
  • assent to her remarks, I obviated their renewal by suddenly demanding
  • the compositions, in a sharp accent, and stepping from the estrade, I
  • proceeded to collect them. As I passed the governess-pupil, I said to
  • her--
  • “You have come in too late to receive a lesson to-day; try to be more
  • punctual next time.”
  • I was behind her, and could not read in her face the effect of my not
  • very civil speech. Probably I should not have troubled myself to do so,
  • had I been full in front; but I observed that she immediately began
  • to slip her books into her cabas again; and, presently, after I had
  • returned to the estrade, while I was arranging the mass of compositions,
  • I heard the folding-door again open and close; and, on looking up, I
  • perceived her place vacant. I thought to myself, “She will consider her
  • first attempt at taking a lesson in English something of a failure;” and
  • I wondered whether she had departed in the sulks, or whether stupidity
  • had induced her to take my words too literally, or, finally, whether
  • my irritable tone had wounded her feelings. The last notion I dismissed
  • almost as soon as I had conceived it, for not having seen any appearance
  • of sensitiveness in any human face since my arrival in Belgium, I had
  • begun to regard it almost as a fabulous quality. Whether her physiognomy
  • announced it I could not tell, for her speedy exit had allowed me no
  • time to ascertain the circumstance. I had, indeed, on two or three
  • previous occasions, caught a passing view of her (as I believe has been
  • mentioned before); but I had never stopped to scrutinize either her face
  • or person, and had but the most vague idea of her general appearance.
  • Just as I had finished rolling up the compositions, the four o’clock
  • bell rang; with my accustomed alertness in obeying that signal, I
  • grasped my hat and evacuated the premises.
  • CHAPTER XIV.
  • IF I was punctual in quitting Mdlle. Reuter’s domicile, I was at least
  • equally punctual in arriving there; I came the next day at five minutes
  • before two, and on reaching the schoolroom door, before I opened it, I
  • heard a rapid, gabbling sound, which warned me that the “priere du midi”
  • was not yet concluded. I waited the termination thereof; it would have
  • been impious to intrude my heretical presence during its progress. How
  • the repeater of the prayer did cackle and splutter! I never before or
  • since heard language enounced with such steam-engine haste. “Notre Pere
  • qui etes au ciel” went off like a shot; then followed an address to
  • Marie “vierge celeste, reine des anges, maison d’or, tour d’ivoire!” and
  • then an invocation to the saint of the day; and then down they all sat,
  • and the solemn (?) rite was over; and I entered, flinging the door wide
  • and striding in fast, as it was my wont to do now; for I had found
  • that in entering with aplomb, and mounting the estrade with emphasis,
  • consisted the grand secret of ensuring immediate silence. The
  • folding-doors between the two classes, opened for the prayer, were
  • instantly closed; a maitresse, work-box in hand, took her seat at her
  • appropriate desk; the pupils sat still with their pens and books before
  • them; my three beauties in the van, now well humbled by a demeanour of
  • consistent coolness, sat erect with their hands folded quietly on their
  • knees; they had given up giggling and whispering to each other, and no
  • longer ventured to utter pert speeches in my presence; they now only
  • talked to me occasionally with their eyes, by means of which organs
  • they could still, however, say very audacious and coquettish things. Had
  • affection, goodness, modesty, real talent, ever employed those bright
  • orbs as interpreters, I do not think I could have refrained from giving
  • a kind and encouraging, perhaps an ardent reply now and then; but as it
  • was, I found pleasure in answering the glance of vanity with the gaze
  • of stoicism. Youthful, fair, brilliant, as were many of my pupils, I can
  • truly say that in me they never saw any other bearing than such as an
  • austere, though just guardian, might have observed towards them. If any
  • doubt the accuracy of this assertion, as inferring more conscientious
  • self-denial or Scipio-like self-control than they feel disposed to
  • give me credit for, let them take into consideration the following
  • circumstances, which, while detracting from my merit, justify my
  • veracity.
  • Know, O incredulous reader! that a master stands in a somewhat different
  • relation towards a pretty, light-headed, probably ignorant girl, to
  • that occupied by a partner at a ball, or a gallant on the promenade.
  • A professor does not meet his pupil to see her dressed in satin and
  • muslin, with hair perfumed and curled, neck scarcely shaded by aerial
  • lace, round white arms circled with bracelets, feet dressed for the
  • gliding dance. It is not his business to whirl her through the waltz,
  • to feed her with compliments, to heighten her beauty by the flush of
  • gratified vanity. Neither does he encounter her on the smooth-rolled,
  • tree shaded Boulevard, in the green and sunny park, whither she repairs
  • clad in her becoming walking dress, her scarf thrown with grace over her
  • shoulders, her little bonnet scarcely screening her curls, the red rose
  • under its brim adding a new tint to the softer rose on her cheek; her
  • face and eyes, too, illumined with smiles, perhaps as transient as the
  • sunshine of the gala-day, but also quite as brilliant; it is not his
  • office to walk by her side, to listen to her lively chat, to carry her
  • parasol, scarcely larger than a broad green leaf, to lead in a ribbon
  • her Blenheim spaniel or Italian greyhound. No: he finds her in the
  • schoolroom, plainly dressed, with books before her. Owing to her
  • education or her nature books are to her a nuisance, and she opens them
  • with aversion, yet her teacher must instil into her mind the contents
  • of these books; that mind resists the admission of grave information, it
  • recoils, it grows restive, sullen tempers are shown, disfiguring frowns
  • spoil the symmetry of the face, sometimes coarse gestures banish grace
  • from the deportment, while muttered expressions, redolent of native and
  • ineradicable vulgarity, desecrate the sweetness of the voice. Where the
  • temperament is serene though the intellect be sluggish, an unconquerable
  • dullness opposes every effort to instruct. Where there is cunning but
  • not energy, dissimulation, falsehood, a thousand schemes and tricks
  • are put in play to evade the necessity of application; in short, to the
  • tutor, female youth, female charms are like tapestry hangings, of which
  • the wrong side is continually turned towards him; and even when he sees
  • the smooth, neat external surface he so well knows what knots, long
  • stitches, and jagged ends are behind that he has scarce a temptation to
  • admire too fondly the seemly forms and bright colours exposed to general
  • view.
  • Our likings are regulated by our circumstances. The artist prefers a
  • hilly country because it is picturesque; the engineer a flat one because
  • it is convenient; the man of pleasure likes what he calls “a fine
  • woman”--she suits him; the fashionable young gentleman admires the
  • fashionable young lady--she is of his kind; the toil-worn, fagged,
  • probably irritable tutor, blind almost to beauty, insensible to airs and
  • graces, glories chiefly in certain mental qualities: application, love
  • of knowledge, natural capacity, docility, truthfulness, gratefulness,
  • are the charms that attract his notice and win his regard. These he
  • seeks, but seldom meets; these, if by chance he finds, he would fain
  • retain for ever, and when separation deprives him of them he feels as if
  • some ruthless hand had snatched from him his only ewe-lamb. Such being
  • the case, and the case it is, my readers will agree with me that there
  • was nothing either very meritorious or very marvellous in the
  • integrity and moderation of my conduct at Mdlle. Reuter’s pensionnat de
  • demoiselles.
  • My first business this afternoon consisted in reading the list of
  • places for the month, determined by the relative correctness of the
  • compositions given the preceding day. The list was headed, as usual,
  • by the name of Sylvie, that plain, quiet little girl I have described
  • before as being at once the best and ugliest pupil in the establishment;
  • the second place had fallen to the lot of a certain Leonie Ledru, a
  • diminutive, sharp-featured, and parchment-skinned creature of quick
  • wits, frail conscience, and indurated feelings; a lawyer-like thing, of
  • whom I used to say that, had she been a boy, she would have made a
  • model of an unprincipled, clever attorney. Then came Eulalie, the proud
  • beauty, the Juno of the school, whom six long years of drilling in the
  • simple grammar of the English language had compelled, despite the stiff
  • phlegm of her intellect, to acquire a mechanical acquaintance with most
  • of its rules. No smile, no trace of pleasure or satisfaction appeared in
  • Sylvie’s nun-like and passive face as she heard her name read first.
  • I always felt saddened by the sight of that poor girl’s absolute
  • quiescence on all occasions, and it was my custom to look at her, to
  • address her, as seldom as possible; her extreme docility, her assiduous
  • perseverance, would have recommended her warmly to my good opinion;
  • her modesty, her intelligence, would have induced me to feel most
  • kindly--most affectionately towards her, notwithstanding the almost
  • ghastly plainness of her features, the disproportion of her form, the
  • corpse-like lack of animation in her countenance, had I not been aware
  • that every friendly word, every kindly action, would be reported by her
  • to her confessor, and by him misinterpreted and poisoned. Once I laid my
  • hand on her head, in token of approbation; I thought Sylvie was going to
  • smile, her dim eye almost kindled; but, presently, she shrank from me;
  • I was a man and a heretic; she, poor child! a destined nun and devoted
  • Catholic: thus a four-fold wall of separation divided her mind from
  • mine. A pert smirk, and a hard glance of triumph, was Leonie’s method of
  • testifying her gratification; Eulalie looked sullen and envious--she had
  • hoped to be first. Hortense and Caroline exchanged a reckless grimace on
  • hearing their names read out somewhere near the bottom of the list; the
  • brand of mental inferiority was considered by them as no disgrace, their
  • hopes for the future being based solely on their personal attractions.
  • This affair arranged, the regular lesson followed. During a brief
  • interval, employed by the pupils in ruling their books, my eye, ranging
  • carelessly over the benches, observed, for the first time, that the
  • farthest seat in the farthest row--a seat usually vacant--was
  • again filled by the new scholar, the Mdlle. Henri so ostentatiously
  • recommended to me by the directress. To-day I had on my spectacles; her
  • appearance, therefore, was clear to me at the first glance; I had not to
  • puzzle over it. She looked young; yet, had I been required to name her
  • exact age, I should have been somewhat nonplussed; the slightness of her
  • figure might have suited seventeen; a certain anxious and pre-occupied
  • expression of face seemed the indication of riper years. She was
  • dressed, like all the rest, in a dark stuff gown and a white collar; her
  • features were dissimilar to any there, not so rounded, more defined, yet
  • scarcely regular. The shape of her head too was different, the superior
  • part more developed, the base considerably less. I felt assured,
  • at first sight, that she was not a Belgian; her complexion, her
  • countenance, her lineaments, her figure, were all distinct from theirs,
  • and, evidently, the type of another race--of a race less gifted with
  • fullness of flesh and plenitude of blood; less jocund, material,
  • unthinking. When I first cast my eyes on her, she sat looking fixedly
  • down, her chin resting on her hand, and she did not change her attitude
  • till I commenced the lesson. None of the Belgian girls would have
  • retained one position, and that a reflective one, for the same length of
  • time. Yet, having intimated that her appearance was peculiar, as
  • being unlike that of her Flemish companions, I have little more to say
  • respecting it; I can pronounce no encomiums on her beauty, for she was
  • not beautiful; nor offer condolence on her plainness, for neither
  • was she plain; a careworn character of forehead, and a corresponding
  • moulding of the mouth, struck me with a sentiment resembling surprise,
  • but these traits would probably have passed unnoticed by any less
  • crotchety observer.
  • Now, reader, though I have spent more than a page in describing Mdlle.
  • Henri, I know well enough that I have left on your mind’s eye no
  • distinct picture of her; I have not painted her complexion, nor her
  • eyes, nor her hair, nor even drawn the outline of her shape. You cannot
  • tell whether her nose was aquiline or retrousse, whether her chin was
  • long or short, her face square or oval; nor could I the first day,
  • and it is not my intention to communicate to you at once a knowledge I
  • myself gained by little and little.
  • I gave a short exercise: which they all wrote down. I saw the new pupil
  • was puzzled at first with the novelty of the form and language; once
  • or twice she looked at me with a sort of painful solicitude, as not
  • comprehending at all what I meant; then she was not ready when the
  • others were, she could not write her phrases so fast as they did; I
  • would not help her, I went on relentless. She looked at me; her eye
  • said most plainly, “I cannot follow you.” I disregarded the appeal, and,
  • carelessly leaning back in my chair, glancing from time to time with a
  • NONCHALANT air out of the window, I dictated a little faster. On looking
  • towards her again, I perceived her face clouded with embarrassment, but
  • she was still writing on most diligently; I paused a few seconds; she
  • employed the interval in hurriedly re-perusing what she had written, and
  • shame and discomfiture were apparent in her countenance; she evidently
  • found she had made great nonsense of it. In ten minutes more the
  • dictation was complete, and, having allowed a brief space in which to
  • correct it, I took their books; it was with a reluctant hand Mdlle.
  • Henri gave up hers, but, having once yielded it to my possession, she
  • composed her anxious face, as if, for the present she had resolved to
  • dismiss regret, and had made up her mind to be thought unprecedentedly
  • stupid. Glancing over her exercise, I found that several lines had been
  • omitted, but what was written contained very few faults; I instantly
  • inscribed “Bon” at the bottom of the page, and returned it to her; she
  • smiled, at first incredulously, then as if reassured, but did not
  • lift her eyes; she could look at me, it seemed, when perplexed and
  • bewildered, but not when gratified; I thought that scarcely fair.
  • CHAPTER XV.
  • SOME time elapsed before I again gave a lesson in the first class; the
  • holiday of Whitsuntide occupied three days, and on the fourth it was the
  • turn of the second division to receive my instructions. As I made
  • the transit of the CARRE, I observed, as usual, the band of sewers
  • surrounding Mdlle. Henri; there were only about a dozen of them, but
  • they made as much noise as might have sufficed for fifty; they seemed
  • very little under her control; three or four at once assailed her with
  • importunate requirements; she looked harassed, she demanded silence, but
  • in vain. She saw me, and I read in her eye pain that a stranger should
  • witness the insubordination of her pupils; she seemed to entreat
  • order--her prayers were useless; then I remarked that she compressed
  • her lips and contracted her brow; and her countenance, if I read
  • it correctly, said--“I have done my best; I seem to merit blame
  • notwithstanding; blame me then who will.” I passed on; as I closed the
  • school-room door, I heard her say, suddenly and sharply, addressing one
  • of the eldest and most turbulent of the lot--
  • “Amelie Mullenberg, ask me no question, and request of me no assistance,
  • for a week to come; during that space of time I will neither speak to
  • you nor help you.”
  • The words were uttered with emphasis--nay, with vehemence--and a
  • comparative silence followed; whether the calm was permanent, I know
  • not; two doors now closed between me and the CARRE.
  • Next day was appropriated to the first class; on my arrival, I found the
  • directress seated, as usual, in a chair between the two estrades, and
  • before her was standing Mdlle. Henri, in an attitude (as it seemed to
  • me) of somewhat reluctant attention. The directress was knitting and
  • talking at the same time. Amidst the hum of a large school-room, it was
  • easy so to speak in the ear of one person, as to be heard by that person
  • alone, and it was thus Mdlle. Reuter parleyed with her teacher. The face
  • of the latter was a little flushed, not a little troubled; there was
  • vexation in it, whence resulting I know not, for the directress looked
  • very placid indeed; she could not be scolding in such gentle whispers,
  • and with so equable a mien; no, it was presently proved that her
  • discourse had been of the most friendly tendency, for I heard the
  • closing words--
  • “C’est assez, ma bonne amie; a present je ne veux pas vous retenir
  • davantage.”
  • Without reply, Mdlle. Henri turned away; dissatisfaction was plainly
  • evinced in her face, and a smile, slight and brief, but bitter,
  • distrustful, and, I thought, scornful, curled her lip as she took her
  • place in the class; it was a secret, involuntary smile, which lasted but
  • a second; an air of depression succeeded, chased away presently by one
  • of attention and interest, when I gave the word for all the pupils to
  • take their reading-books. In general I hated the reading-lesson, it
  • was such a torture to the ear to listen to their uncouth mouthing of
  • my native tongue, and no effort of example or precept on my part ever
  • seemed to effect the slightest improvement in their accent. To-day,
  • each in her appropriate key, lisped, stuttered, mumbled, and jabbered as
  • usual; about fifteen had racked me in turn, and my auricular nerve was
  • expecting with resignation the discords of the sixteenth, when a full,
  • though low voice, read out, in clear correct English.
  • “On his way to Perth, the king was met by a Highland woman, calling
  • herself a prophetess; she stood at the side of the ferry by which he was
  • about to travel to the north, and cried with a loud voice, ‘My lord the
  • king, if you pass this water you will never return again alive!’”--(VIDE
  • the HISTORY OF SCOTLAND).
  • I looked up in amazement; the voice was a voice of Albion; the accent
  • was pure and silvery; it only wanted firmness, and assurance, to be the
  • counterpart of what any well-educated lady in Essex or Middlesex might
  • have enounced, yet the speaker or reader was no other than Mdlle. Henri,
  • in whose grave, joyless face I saw no mark of consciousness that she had
  • performed any extraordinary feat. No one else evinced surprise either.
  • Mdlle. Reuter knitted away assiduously; I was aware, however, that at
  • the conclusion of the paragraph, she had lifted her eyelid and honoured
  • me with a glance sideways; she did not know the full excellency of the
  • teacher’s style of reading, but she perceived that her accent was not
  • that of the others, and wanted to discover what I thought; I masked my
  • visage with indifference, and ordered the next girl to proceed.
  • When the lesson was over, I took advantage of the confusion caused by
  • breaking up, to approach Mdlle. Henri; she was standing near the window
  • and retired as I advanced; she thought I wanted to look out, and did
  • not imagine that I could have anything to say to her. I took her
  • exercise-book out of her hand; as I turned over the leaves I addressed
  • her:--
  • “You have had lessons in English before?” I asked.
  • “No, sir.”
  • “No! you read it well; you have been in England?”
  • “Oh, no!” with some animation.
  • “You have been in English families?”
  • Still the answer was “No.” Here my eye, resting on the flyleaf of the
  • book, saw written, “Frances Evan Henri.”
  • “Your name?” I asked
  • “Yes, sir.”
  • My interrogations were cut short; I heard a little rustling behind me,
  • and close at my back was the directress, professing to be examining the
  • interior of a desk.
  • “Mademoiselle,” said she, looking up and addressing the teacher, “Will
  • you have the goodness to go and stand in the corridor, while the young
  • ladies are putting on their things, and try to keep some order?”
  • Mdlle. Henri obeyed.
  • “What splendid weather!” observed the directress cheerfully, glancing at
  • the same time from the window. I assented and was withdrawing. “What of
  • your new pupil, monsieur?” continued she, following my retreating steps.
  • “Is she likely to make progress in English?”
  • “Indeed I can hardly judge. She possesses a pretty good accent; of
  • her real knowledge of the language I have as yet had no opportunity of
  • forming an opinion.”
  • “And her natural capacity, monsieur? I have had my fears about that: can
  • you relieve me by an assurance at least of its average power?”
  • “I see no reason to doubt its average power, mademoiselle, but really
  • I scarcely know her, and have not had time to study the calibre of her
  • capacity. I wish you a very good afternoon.”
  • She still pursued me. “You will observe, monsieur, and tell me what you
  • think; I could so much better rely on your opinion than on my own; women
  • cannot judge of these things as men can, and, excuse my pertinacity,
  • monsieur, but it is natural I should feel interested about this poor
  • little girl (pauvre petite); she has scarcely any relations, her own
  • efforts are all she has to look to, her acquirements must be her sole
  • fortune; her present position has once been mine, or nearly so; it is
  • then but natural I should sympathize with her; and sometimes when I see
  • the difficulty she has in managing pupils, I feel quite chagrined.
  • I doubt not she does her best, her intentions are excellent; but,
  • monsieur, she wants tact and firmness. I have talked to her on the
  • subject, but I am not fluent, and probably did not express myself
  • with clearness; she never appears to comprehend me. Now, would you
  • occasionally, when you see an opportunity, slip in a word of advice
  • to her on the subject; men have so much more influence than women
  • have--they argue so much more logically than we do; and you, monsieur,
  • in particular, have so paramount a power of making yourself obeyed;
  • a word of advice from you could not but do her good; even if she were
  • sullen and headstrong (which I hope she is not), she would scarcely
  • refuse to listen to you; for my own part, I can truly say that I never
  • attend one of your lessons without deriving benefit from witnessing your
  • management of the pupils. The other masters are a constant source of
  • anxiety to me; they cannot impress the young ladies with sentiments of
  • respect, nor restrain the levity natural to youth: in you, monsieur, I
  • feel the most absolute confidence; try then to put this poor child
  • into the way of controlling our giddy, high-spirited Brabantoises.
  • But, monsieur, I would add one word more; don’t alarm her AMOUR PROPRE;
  • beware of inflicting a wound there. I reluctantly admit that in that
  • particular she is blameably--some would say ridiculously--susceptible.
  • I fear I have touched this sore point inadvertently, and she cannot get
  • over it.”
  • During the greater part of this harangue my hand was on the lock of the
  • outer door; I now turned it.
  • “Au revoir, mademoiselle,” said I, and I escaped. I saw the directress’s
  • stock of words was yet far from exhausted. She looked after me, she
  • would fain have detained me longer. Her manner towards me had
  • been altered ever since I had begun to treat her with hardness and
  • indifference: she almost cringed to me on every occasion; she consulted
  • my countenance incessantly, and beset me with innumerable little
  • officious attentions. Servility creates despotism. This slavish homage,
  • instead of softening my heart, only pampered whatever was stern and
  • exacting in its mood. The very circumstance of her hovering round me
  • like a fascinated bird, seemed to transform me into a rigid pillar of
  • stone; her flatteries irritated my scorn, her blandishments confirmed
  • my reserve. At times I wondered what she meant by giving herself such
  • trouble to win me, when the more profitable Pelet was already in her
  • nets, and when, too, she was aware that I possessed her secret, for I
  • had not scrupled to tell her as much: but the fact is that as it was
  • her nature to doubt the reality and under-value the worth of modesty,
  • affection, disinterestedness--to regard these qualities as foibles of
  • character--so it was equally her tendency to consider pride, hardness,
  • selfishness, as proofs of strength. She would trample on the neck
  • of humility, she would kneel at the feet of disdain; she would meet
  • tenderness with secret contempt, indifference she would woo with
  • ceaseless assiduities. Benevolence, devotedness, enthusiasm, were
  • her antipathies; for dissimulation and self-interest she had a
  • preference--they were real wisdom in her eyes; moral and physical
  • degradation, mental and bodily inferiority, she regarded with
  • indulgence; they were foils capable of being turned to good account as
  • set-offs for her own endowments. To violence, injustice, tyranny, she
  • succumbed--they were her natural masters; she had no propensity to hate,
  • no impulse to resist them; the indignation their behests awake in some
  • hearts was unknown in hers. From all this it resulted that the false and
  • selfish called her wise, the vulgar and debased termed her charitable,
  • the insolent and unjust dubbed her amiable, the conscientious and
  • benevolent generally at first accepted as valid her claim to be
  • considered one of themselves; but ere long the plating of pretension
  • wore off, the real material appeared below, and they laid her aside as a
  • deception.
  • CHAPTER XVI.
  • In the course of another fortnight I had seen sufficient of Frances
  • Evans Henri, to enable me to form a more definite opinion of her
  • character. I found her possessed in a somewhat remarkable degree of at
  • least two good points, viz., perseverance and a sense of duty; I
  • found she was really capable of applying to study, of contending with
  • difficulties. At first I offered her the same help which I had always
  • found it necessary to confer on the others; I began with unloosing for
  • her each knotty point, but I soon discovered that such help was regarded
  • by my new pupil as degrading; she recoiled from it with a certain proud
  • impatience. Hereupon I appointed her long lessons, and left her to solve
  • alone any perplexities they might present. She set to the task with
  • serious ardour, and having quickly accomplished one labour, eagerly
  • demanded more. So much for her perseverance; as to her sense of duty,
  • it evinced itself thus: she liked to learn, but hated to teach; her
  • progress as a pupil depended upon herself, and I saw that on herself she
  • could calculate with certainty; her success as a teacher rested partly,
  • perhaps chiefly, upon the will of others; it cost her a most painful
  • effort to enter into conflict with this foreign will, to endeavour
  • to bend it into subjection to her own; for in what regarded people in
  • general the action of her will was impeded by many scruples; it was as
  • unembarrassed as strong where her own affairs were concerned, and to it
  • she could at any time subject her inclination, if that inclination went
  • counter to her convictions of right; yet when called upon to wrestle
  • with the propensities, the habits, the faults of others, of children
  • especially, who are deaf to reason, and, for the most part, insensate to
  • persuasion, her will sometimes almost refused to act; then came in the
  • sense of duty, and forced the reluctant will into operation. A wasteful
  • expense of energy and labour was frequently the consequence; Frances
  • toiled for and with her pupils like a drudge, but it was long ere her
  • conscientious exertions were rewarded by anything like docility on their
  • part, because they saw that they had power over her, inasmuch as by
  • resisting her painful attempts to convince, persuade, control--by
  • forcing her to the employment of coercive measures--they could
  • inflict upon her exquisite suffering. Human beings--human children
  • especially--seldom deny themselves the pleasure of exercising a power
  • which they are conscious of possessing, even though that power consist
  • only in a capacity to make others wretched; a pupil whose sensations are
  • duller than those of his instructor, while his nerves are tougher and
  • his bodily strength perhaps greater, has an immense advantage over that
  • instructor, and he will generally use it relentlessly, because the very
  • young, very healthy, very thoughtless, know neither how to sympathize
  • nor how to spare. Frances, I fear, suffered much; a continual weight
  • seemed to oppress her spirits; I have said she did not live in the
  • house, and whether in her own abode, wherever that might be, she wore
  • the same preoccupied, unsmiling, sorrowfully resolved air that always
  • shaded her features under the roof of Mdlle. Reuter, I could not tell.
  • One day I gave, as a devoir, the trite little anecdote of Alfred tending
  • cakes in the herdsman’s hut, to be related with amplifications. A
  • singular affair most of the pupils made of it; brevity was what they
  • had chiefly studied; the majority of the narratives were perfectly
  • unintelligible; those of Sylvie and Leonie Ledru alone pretended to
  • anything like sense and connection. Eulalie, indeed, had hit, upon a
  • clever expedient for at once ensuring accuracy and saving trouble; she
  • had obtained access somehow to an abridged history of England, and had
  • copied the anecdote out fair. I wrote on the margin of her production
  • “Stupid and deceitful,” and then tore it down the middle.
  • Last in the pile of single-leaved devoirs, I found one of several
  • sheets, neatly written out and stitched together; I knew the hand, and
  • scarcely needed the evidence of the signature “Frances Evans Henri” to
  • confirm my conjecture as to the writer’s identity.
  • Night was my usual time for correcting devoirs, and my own room the
  • usual scene of such task--task most onerous hitherto; and it seemed
  • strange to me to feel rising within me an incipient sense of interest,
  • as I snuffed the candle and addressed myself to the perusal of the poor
  • teacher’s manuscript.
  • “Now,” thought I, “I shall see a glimpse of what she really is; I shall
  • get an idea of the nature and extent of her powers; not that she can be
  • expected to express herself well in a foreign tongue, but still, if she
  • has any mind, here will be a reflection of it.”
  • The narrative commenced by a description of a Saxon peasant’s hut,
  • situated within the confines of a great, leafless, winter forest; it
  • represented an evening in December; flakes of snow were falling, and
  • the herdsman foretold a heavy storm; he summoned his wife to aid him in
  • collecting their flock, roaming far away on the pastoral banks of the
  • Thone; he warns her that it will be late ere they return. The good woman
  • is reluctant to quit her occupation of baking cakes for the evening
  • meal; but acknowledging the primary importance of securing the herds and
  • flocks, she puts on her sheep-skin mantle; and, addressing a stranger
  • who rests half reclined on a bed of rushes near the hearth, bids him
  • mind the bread till her return.
  • “Take care, young man,” she continues, “that you fasten the door well
  • after us; and, above all, open to none in our absence; whatever sound
  • you hear, stir not, and look not out. The night will soon fall; this
  • forest is most wild and lonely; strange noises are often heard therein
  • after sunset; wolves haunt these glades, and Danish warriors infest the
  • country; worse things are talked of; you might chance to hear, as it
  • were, a child cry, and on opening the door to afford it succour, a great
  • black bull, or a shadowy goblin dog, might rush over the threshold;
  • or, more awful still, if something flapped, as with wings, against the
  • lattice, and then a raven or a white dove flew in and settled on the
  • hearth, such a visitor would be a sure sign of misfortune to the house;
  • therefore, heed my advice, and lift the latchet for nothing.”
  • Her husband calls her away, both depart. The stranger, left alone,
  • listens awhile to the muffled snow-wind, the remote, swollen sound of
  • the river, and then he speaks.
  • “It is Christmas Eve,” says he, “I mark the date; here I sit alone on
  • a rude couch of rushes, sheltered by the thatch of a herdsman’s hut;
  • I, whose inheritance was a kingdom, owe my night’s harbourage to a poor
  • serf; my throne is usurped, my crown presses the brow of an invader; I
  • have no friends; my troops wander broken in the hills of Wales; reckless
  • robbers spoil my country; my subjects lie prostrate, their breasts
  • crushed by the heel of the brutal Dane. Fate! thou hast done thy worst,
  • and now thou standest before me resting thy hand on thy blunted blade.
  • Ay; I see thine eye confront mine and demand why I still live, why I
  • still hope. Pagan demon, I credit not thine omnipotence, and so cannot
  • succumb to thy power. My God, whose Son, as on this night, took on Him
  • the form of man, and for man vouchsafed to suffer and bleed, controls
  • thy hand, and without His behest thou canst not strike a stroke. My God
  • is sinless, eternal, all-wise--in Him is my trust; and though stripped
  • and crushed by thee--though naked, desolate, void of resource--I do not
  • despair, I cannot despair: were the lance of Guthrum now wet with my
  • blood, I should not despair. I watch, I toil, I hope, I pray; Jehovah,
  • in his own time, will aid.”
  • I need not continue the quotation; the whole devoir was in the same
  • strain. There were errors of orthography, there were foreign idioms,
  • there were some faults of construction, there were verbs irregular
  • transformed into verbs regular; it was mostly made up, as the above
  • example shows, of short and somewhat rude sentences, and the style stood
  • in great need of polish and sustained dignity; yet such as it was, I
  • had hitherto seen nothing like it in the course of my professorial
  • experience. The girl’s mind had conceived a picture of the hut, of the
  • two peasants, of the crownless king; she had imagined the wintry forest,
  • she had recalled the old Saxon ghost-legends, she had appreciated
  • Alfred’s courage under calamity, she had remembered his Christian
  • education, and had shown him, with the rooted confidence of those
  • primitive days, relying on the scriptural Jehovah for aid against the
  • mythological Destiny. This she had done without a hint from me: I had
  • given the subject, but not said a word about the manner of treating it.
  • “I will find, or make, an opportunity of speaking to her,” I said to
  • myself as I rolled the devoir up; “I will learn what she has of English
  • in her besides the name of Frances Evans; she is no novice in the
  • language, that is evident, yet she told me she had neither been in
  • England, nor taken lessons in English, nor lived in English families.”
  • In the course of my next lesson, I made a report of the other devoirs,
  • dealing out praise and blame in very small retail parcels, according to
  • my custom, for there was no use in blaming severely, and high encomiums
  • were rarely merited. I said nothing of Mdlle. Henri’s exercise, and,
  • spectacles on nose, I endeavoured to decipher in her countenance her
  • sentiments at the omission. I wanted to find out whether in her existed
  • a consciousness of her own talents. “If she thinks she did a clever
  • thing in composing that devoir, she will now look mortified,” thought
  • I. Grave as usual, almost sombre, was her face; as usual, her eyes were
  • fastened on the cahier open before her; there was something, I thought,
  • of expectation in her attitude, as I concluded a brief review of the
  • last devoir, and when, casting it from me and rubbing my hands, I bade
  • them take their grammars, some slight change did pass over her air
  • and mien, as though she now relinquished a faint prospect of pleasant
  • excitement; she had been waiting for something to be discussed in which
  • she had a degree of interest; the discussion was not to come on, so
  • expectation sank back, shrunk and sad, but attention, promptly filling
  • up the void, repaired in a moment the transient collapse of feature;
  • still, I felt, rather than saw, during the whole course of the lesson,
  • that a hope had been wrenched from her, and that if she did not show
  • distress, it was because she would not.
  • At four o’clock, when the bell rang and the room was in immediate
  • tumult, instead of taking my hat and starting from the estrade, I sat
  • still a moment. I looked at Frances, she was putting her books into her
  • cabas; having fastened the button, she raised her head; encountering my
  • eye, she made a quiet, respectful obeisance, as bidding good afternoon,
  • and was turning to depart:--
  • “Come here,” said I, lifting my finger at the same time. She hesitated;
  • she could not hear the words amidst the uproar now pervading both
  • school-rooms; I repeated the sign; she approached; again she paused
  • within half a yard of the estrade, and looked shy, and still doubtful
  • whether she had mistaken my meaning.
  • “Step up,” I said, speaking with decision. It is the only way of dealing
  • with diffident, easily embarrassed characters, and with some slight
  • manual aid I presently got her placed just where I wanted her to be,
  • that is, between my desk and the window, where she was screened from the
  • rush of the second division, and where no one could sneak behind her to
  • listen.
  • “Take a seat,” I said, placing a tabouret; and I made her sit down. I
  • knew what I was doing would be considered a very strange thing, and,
  • what was more, I did not care. Frances knew it also, and, I fear, by an
  • appearance of agitation and trembling, that she cared much. I drew from
  • my pocket the rolled-up devoir.
  • “This is yours, I suppose?” said I, addressing her in English, for I now
  • felt sure she could speak English.
  • “Yes,” she answered distinctly; and as I unrolled it and laid it out
  • flat on the desk before her with my hand upon it, and a pencil in that
  • hand, I saw her moved, and, as it were, kindled; her depression beamed
  • as a cloud might behind which the sun is burning.
  • “This devoir has numerous faults,” said I. “It will take you some years
  • of careful study before you are in a condition to write English with
  • absolute correctness. Attend: I will point out some principal defects.”
  • And I went through it carefully, noting every error, and demonstrating
  • why they were errors, and how the words or phrases ought to have been
  • written. In the course of this sobering process she became calm. I now
  • went on:
  • “As to the substance of your devoir, Mdlle. Henri, it has surprised me;
  • I perused it with pleasure, because I saw in it some proofs of taste and
  • fancy. Taste and fancy are not the highest gifts of the human mind, but
  • such as they are you possess them--not probably in a paramount degree,
  • but in a degree beyond what the majority can boast. You may then take
  • courage; cultivate the faculties that God and nature have bestowed on
  • you, and do not fear in any crisis of suffering, under any pressure of
  • injustice, to derive free and full consolation from the consciousness of
  • their strength and rarity.”
  • “Strength and rarity!” I repeated to myself; “ay, the words are probably
  • true,” for on looking up, I saw the sun had dissevered its screening
  • cloud, her countenance was transfigured, a smile shone in her eyes--a
  • smile almost triumphant; it seemed to say--
  • “I am glad you have been forced to discover so much of my nature; you
  • need not so carefully moderate your language. Do you think I am myself a
  • stranger to myself? What you tell me in terms so qualified, I have known
  • fully from a child.”
  • She did say this as plainly as a frank and flashing glance could, but
  • in a moment the glow of her complexion, the radiance of her aspect,
  • had subsided; if strongly conscious of her talents, she was equally
  • conscious of her harassing defects, and the remembrance of these
  • obliterated for a single second, now reviving with sudden force, at once
  • subdued the too vivid characters in which her sense of her powers had
  • been expressed. So quick was the revulsion of feeling, I had not time to
  • check her triumph by reproof; ere I could contract my brows to a frown
  • she had become serious and almost mournful-looking.
  • “Thank you, sir,” said she, rising. There was gratitude both in her
  • voice and in the look with which she accompanied it. It was time,
  • indeed, for our conference to terminate; for, when I glanced around,
  • behold all the boarders (the day-scholars had departed) were congregated
  • within a yard or two of my desk, and stood staring with eyes and mouths
  • wide open; the three maitresses formed a whispering knot in one corner,
  • and, close at my elbow, was the directress, sitting on a low chair,
  • calmly clipping the tassels of her finished purse.
  • CHAPTER XVII.
  • AFTER all I had profited but imperfectly by the opportunity I had so
  • boldly achieved of speaking to Mdlle. Henri; it was my intention to ask
  • her how she came to be possessed of two English baptismal names, Frances
  • and Evans, in addition to her French surname, also whence she derived
  • her good accent. I had forgotten both points, or, rather, our colloquy
  • had been so brief that I had not had time to bring them forward;
  • moreover, I had not half tested her powers of speaking English; all I
  • had drawn from her in that language were the words “Yes,” and “Thank
  • you, sir.” “No matter,” I reflected. “What has been left incomplete now,
  • shall be finished another day.” Nor did I fail to keep the promise thus
  • made to myself. It was difficult to get even a few words of particular
  • conversation with one pupil among so many; but, according to the old
  • proverb, “Where there is a will, there is a way;” and again and again
  • I managed to find an opportunity for exchanging a few words with Mdlle.
  • Henri, regardless that envy stared and detraction whispered whenever I
  • approached her.
  • “Your book an instant.” Such was the mode in which I often began these
  • brief dialogues; the time was always just at the conclusion of the
  • lesson; and motioning to her to rise, I installed myself in her place,
  • allowing her to stand deferentially at my side; for I esteemed it wise
  • and right in her case to enforce strictly all forms ordinarily in
  • use between master and pupil; the rather because I perceived that in
  • proportion as my manner grew austere and magisterial, hers became easy
  • and self-possessed--an odd contradiction, doubtless, to the ordinary
  • effect in such cases; but so it was.
  • “A pencil,” said I, holding out my hand without looking at her. (I am
  • now about to sketch a brief report of the first of these conferences.)
  • She gave me one, and while I underlined some errors in a grammatical
  • exercise she had written, I observed--
  • “You are not a native of Belgium?”
  • “No.”
  • “Nor of France?”
  • “No.”
  • “Where, then, is your birthplace?”
  • “I was born at Geneva.”
  • “You don’t call Frances and Evans Swiss names, I presume?”
  • “No, sir; they are English names.”
  • “Just so; and is it the custom of the Genevese to give their children
  • English appellatives?”
  • “Non, Monsieur; mais--”
  • “Speak English, if you please.”
  • “Mais--”
  • “English--”
  • “But” (slowly and with embarrassment) “my parents were not all the two
  • Genevese.”
  • “Say BOTH, instead of ‘all the two,’ mademoiselle.”
  • “Not BOTH Swiss: my mother was English.”
  • “Ah! and of English extraction?”
  • “Yes--her ancestors were all English.”
  • “And your father?”
  • “He was Swiss.”
  • “What besides? What was his profession?”
  • “Ecclesiastic--pastor--he had a church.”
  • “Since your mother is an Englishwoman, why do you not speak English with
  • more facility?”
  • “Maman est morte, il y a dix ans.”
  • “And you do homage to her memory by forgetting her language. Have the
  • goodness to put French out of your mind so long as I converse with
  • you--keep to English.”
  • “C’est si difficile, monsieur, quand on n’en a plus l’habitude.”
  • “You had the habitude formerly, I suppose? Now answer me in your mother
  • tongue.”
  • “Yes, sir, I spoke the English more than the French when I was a child.”
  • “Why do you not speak it now?”
  • “Because I have no English friends.”
  • “You live with your father, I suppose?”
  • “My father is dead.”
  • “You have brothers and sisters?”
  • “Not one.”
  • “Do you live alone?”
  • “No--I have an aunt--ma tante Julienne.”
  • “Your father’s sister?”
  • “Justement, monsieur.”
  • “Is that English?”
  • “No--but I forget--”
  • “For which, mademoiselle, if you were a child I should certainly devise
  • some slight punishment; at your age--you must be two or three and
  • twenty, I should think?”
  • “Pas encore, monsieur--en un mois j’aurai dix-neuf ans.”
  • “Well, nineteen is a mature age, and, having attained it, you ought to
  • be so solicitous for your own improvement, that it should not be needful
  • for a master to remind you twice of the expediency of your speaking
  • English whenever practicable.”
  • To this wise speech I received no answer; and, when I looked up, my
  • pupil was smiling to herself a much-meaning, though not very gay smile;
  • it seemed to say, “He talks of he knows not what:” it said this
  • so plainly, that I determined to request information on the point
  • concerning which my ignorance seemed to be thus tacitly affirmed.
  • “Are you solicitous for your own improvement?”
  • “Rather.”
  • “How do you prove it, mademoiselle?”
  • An odd question, and bluntly put; it excited a second smile.
  • “Why, monsieur, I am not inattentive--am I? I learn my lessons well--”
  • “Oh, a child can do that! and what more do you do?”
  • “What more can I do?”
  • “Oh, certainly, not much; but you are a teacher, are you not, as well as
  • a pupil?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “You teach lace-mending?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “A dull, stupid occupation; do you like it?”
  • “No--it is tedious.”
  • “Why do you pursue it? Why do you not rather teach history, geography,
  • grammar, even arithmetic?”
  • “Is monsieur certain that I am myself thoroughly acquainted with these
  • studies?”
  • “I don’t know; you ought to be at your age.”
  • “But I never was at school, monsieur--”
  • “Indeed! What then were your friends--what was your aunt about? She is
  • very much to blame.”
  • “No monsieur, no--my aunt is good--she is not to blame--she does what
  • she can; she lodges and nourishes me” (I report Mdlle. Henri’s phrases
  • literally, and it was thus she translated from the French). “She is not
  • rich; she has only an annuity of twelve hundred francs, and it would be
  • impossible for her to send me to school.”
  • “Rather,” thought I to myself on hearing this, but I continued, in the
  • dogmatical tone I had adopted:--
  • “It is sad, however, that you should be brought up in ignorance of the
  • most ordinary branches of education; had you known something of history
  • and grammar you might, by degrees, have relinquished your lace-mending
  • drudgery, and risen in the world.”
  • “It is what I mean to do.”
  • “How? By a knowledge of English alone? That will not suffice; no
  • respectable family will receive a governess whose whole stock of
  • knowledge consists in a familiarity with one foreign language.”
  • “Monsieur, I know other things.”
  • “Yes, yes, you can work with Berlin wools, and embroider handkerchiefs
  • and collars--that will do little for you.”
  • Mdlle. Henri’s lips were unclosed to answer, but she checked herself,
  • as thinking the discussion had been sufficiently pursued, and remained
  • silent.
  • “Speak,” I continued, impatiently; “I never like the appearance of
  • acquiescence when the reality is not there; and you had a contradiction
  • at your tongue’s end.”
  • “Monsieur, I have had many lessons both in grammar, history, geography,
  • and arithmetic. I have gone through a course of each study.”
  • “Bravo! but how did you manage it, since your aunt could not afford to
  • send you to school?”
  • “By lace-mending; by the thing monsieur despises so much.”
  • “Truly! And now, mademoiselle, it will be a good exercise for you to
  • explain to me in English how such a result was produced by such means.”
  • “Monsieur, I begged my aunt to have me taught lace-mending soon after
  • we came to Brussels, because I knew it was a METIER, a trade which was
  • easily learnt, and by which I could earn some money very soon. I learnt
  • it in a few days, and I quickly got work, for all the Brussels ladies
  • have old lace--very precious--which must be mended all the times it is
  • washed. I earned money a little, and this money I gave for lessons
  • in the studies I have mentioned; some of it I spent in buying books,
  • English books especially; soon I shall try to find a place of governess,
  • or school-teacher, when I can write and speak English well; but it will
  • be difficult, because those who know I have been a lace-mender will
  • despise me, as the pupils here despise me. Pourtant j’ai mon projet,”
  • she added in a lower tone.
  • “What is it?”
  • “I will go and live in England; I will teach French there.”
  • The words were pronounced emphatically. She said “England” as you might
  • suppose an Israelite of Moses’ days would have said Canaan.
  • “Have you a wish to see England?”
  • “Yes, and an intention.”
  • And here a voice, the voice of the directress, interposed:
  • “Mademoiselle Henri, je crois qu’il va pleuvoir; vous feriez bien, ma
  • bonne amie, de retourner chez vous tout de suite.”
  • In silence, without a word of thanks for this officious warning, Mdlle.
  • Henri collected her books; she moved to me respectfully, endeavoured to
  • move to her superior, though the endeavour was almost a failure, for her
  • head seemed as if it would not bend, and thus departed.
  • Where there is one grain of perseverance or wilfulness in the
  • composition, trifling obstacles are ever known rather to stimulate than
  • discourage. Mdlle. Reuter might as well have spared herself the trouble
  • of giving that intimation about the weather (by-the-by her prediction
  • was falsified by the event--it did not rain that evening). At the close
  • of the next lesson I was again at Mdlle. Henri’s desk. Thus did I accost
  • her:--
  • “What is your idea of England, mademoiselle? Why do you wish to go
  • there?”
  • Accustomed by this time to the calculated abruptness of my manner, it no
  • longer discomposed or surprised her, and she answered with only so
  • much of hesitation as was rendered inevitable by the difficulty she
  • experienced in improvising the translation of her thoughts from French
  • to English.
  • “England is something unique, as I have heard and read; my idea of it is
  • vague, and I want to go there to render my idea clear, definite.”
  • “Hum! How much of England do you suppose you could see if you went there
  • in the capacity of a teacher? A strange notion you must have of getting
  • a clear and definite idea of a country! All you could see of Great
  • Britain would be the interior of a school, or at most of one or two
  • private dwellings.”
  • “It would be an English school; they would be English dwellings.”
  • “Indisputably; but what then? What would be the value of observations
  • made on a scale so narrow?”
  • “Monsieur, might not one learn something by analogy?
  • An--echantillon--a--a sample often serves to give an idea of the whole;
  • besides, narrow and wide are words comparative, are they not? All my
  • life would perhaps seem narrow in your eyes--all the life of a--that
  • little animal subterranean--une taupe--comment dit-on?”
  • “Mole.”
  • “Yes--a mole, which lives underground would seem narrow even to me.”
  • “Well, mademoiselle--what then? Proceed.”
  • “Mais, monsieur, vous me comprenez.”
  • “Not in the least; have the goodness to explain.”
  • “Why, monsieur, it is just so. In Switzerland I have done but little,
  • learnt but little, and seen but little; my life there was in a circle;
  • I walked the same round every day; I could not get out of it; had I
  • rested--remained there even till my death, I should never have enlarged
  • it, because I am poor and not skilful, I have not great acquirements;
  • when I was quite tired of this round, I begged my aunt to go to
  • Brussels; my existence is no larger here, because I am no richer or
  • higher; I walk in as narrow a limit, but the scene is changed; it would
  • change again if I went to England. I knew something of the bourgeois of
  • Geneva, now I know something of the bourgeois of Brussels; if I went to
  • London, I would know something of the bourgeois of London. Can you make
  • any sense out of what I say, monsieur, or is it all obscure?”
  • “I see, I see--now let us advert to another subject; you propose to
  • devote your life to teaching, and you are a most unsuccessful teacher;
  • you cannot keep your pupils in order.”
  • A flush of painful confusion was the result of this harsh remark; she
  • bent her head to the desk, but soon raising it replied--
  • “Monsieur, I am not a skilful teacher, it is true, but practice
  • improves; besides, I work under difficulties; here I only teach sewing,
  • I can show no power in sewing, no superiority--it is a subordinate
  • art; then I have no associates in this house, I am isolated; I am too a
  • heretic, which deprives me of influence.”
  • “And in England you would be a foreigner; that too would deprive you
  • of influence, and would effectually separate you from all round you; in
  • England you would have as few connections, as little importance as you
  • have here.”
  • “But I should be learning something; for the rest, there are probably
  • difficulties for such as I everywhere, and if I must contend, and
  • perhaps be conquered, I would rather submit to English pride than to
  • Flemish coarseness; besides, monsieur--”
  • She stopped--not evidently from any difficulty in finding words to
  • express herself, but because discretion seemed to say, “You have said
  • enough.”
  • “Finish your phrase,” I urged.
  • “Besides, monsieur, I long to live once more among Protestants; they are
  • more honest than Catholics; a Romish school is a building with porous
  • walls, a hollow floor, a false ceiling; every room in this house,
  • monsieur, has eyeholes and ear-holes, and what the house is, the
  • inhabitants are, very treacherous; they all think it lawful to tell
  • lies; they all call it politeness to profess friendship where they feel
  • hatred.”
  • “All?” said I; “you mean the pupils--the mere children--inexperienced,
  • giddy things, who have not learnt to distinguish the difference between
  • right and wrong?”
  • “On the contrary, monsieur--the children are the most sincere; they have
  • not yet had time to become accomplished in duplicity; they will tell
  • lies, but they do it inartificially, and you know they are lying; but
  • the grown-up people are very false; they deceive strangers, they deceive
  • each other--”
  • A servant here entered:--
  • “Mdlle. Henri--Mdlle. Reuter vous prie de vouloir bien conduire la
  • petite de Dorlodot chez elle, elle vous attend dans le cabinet
  • de Rosalie la portiere--c’est que sa bonne n’est pas venue la
  • chercher--voyez-vous.”
  • “Eh bien! est-ce que je suis sa bonne--moi?” demanded Mdlle. Henri; then
  • smiling, with that same bitter, derisive smile I had seen on her lips
  • once before, she hastily rose and made her exit.
  • CHAPTER XVIII.
  • THE young Anglo-Swiss evidently derived both pleasure and profit from
  • the study of her mother-tongue. In teaching her I did not, of course,
  • confine myself to the ordinary school routine; I made instruction in
  • English a channel for instruction in literature. I prescribed to her a
  • course of reading; she had a little selection of English classics, a
  • few of which had been left her by her mother, and the others she had
  • purchased with her own penny-fee. I lent her some more modern works; all
  • these she read with avidity, giving me, in writing, a clear summary of
  • each work when she had perused it. Composition, too, she delighted in.
  • Such occupation seemed the very breath of her nostrils, and soon her
  • improved productions wrung from me the avowal that those qualities in
  • her I had termed taste and fancy ought rather to have been denominated
  • judgment and imagination. When I intimated so much, which I did as usual
  • in dry and stinted phrase, I looked for the radiant and exulting smile
  • my one word of eulogy had elicited before; but Frances coloured. If she
  • did smile, it was very softly and shyly; and instead of looking up to me
  • with a conquering glance, her eyes rested on my hand, which, stretched
  • over her shoulder, was writing some directions with a pencil on the
  • margin of her book.
  • “Well, are you pleased that I am satisfied with your progress?” I asked.
  • “Yes,” said she slowly, gently, the blush that had half subsided
  • returning.
  • “But I do not say enough, I suppose?” I continued. “My praises are too
  • cool?”
  • She made no answer, and, I thought, looked a little sad. I divined her
  • thoughts, and should much have liked to have responded to them, had
  • it been expedient so to do. She was not now very ambitious of
  • my admiration--not eagerly desirous of dazzling me; a little
  • affection--ever so little--pleased her better than all the panegyrics in
  • the world. Feeling this, I stood a good while behind her, writing on
  • the margin of her book. I could hardly quit my station or relinquish my
  • occupation; something retained me bending there, my head very near
  • hers, and my hand near hers too; but the margin of a copy-book is not an
  • illimitable space--so, doubtless, the directress thought; and she took
  • occasion to walk past in order to ascertain by what art I prolonged so
  • disproportionately the period necessary for filling it. I was obliged to
  • go. Distasteful effort--to leave what we most prefer!
  • Frances did not become pale or feeble in consequence of her sedentary
  • employment; perhaps the stimulus it communicated to her mind
  • counterbalanced the inaction it imposed on her body. She changed,
  • indeed, changed obviously and rapidly; but it was for the better. When
  • I first saw her, her countenance was sunless, her complexion colourless;
  • she looked like one who had no source of enjoyment, no store of bliss
  • anywhere in the world; now the cloud had passed from her mien, leaving
  • space for the dawn of hope and interest, and those feelings rose like a
  • clear morning, animating what had been depressed, tinting what had been
  • pale. Her eyes, whose colour I had not at first known, so dim were they
  • with repressed tears, so shadowed with ceaseless dejection, now, lit by
  • a ray of the sunshine that cheered her heart, revealed irids of bright
  • hazel--irids large and full, screened with long lashes; and pupils
  • instinct with fire. That look of wan emaciation which anxiety or low
  • spirits often communicates to a thoughtful, thin face, rather long than
  • round, having vanished from hers, a clearness of skin almost bloom,
  • and a plumpness almost embonpoint, softened the decided lines of
  • her features. Her figure shared in this beneficial change; it became
  • rounder, and as the harmony of her form was complete and her stature of
  • the graceful middle height, one did not regret (or at least I did not
  • regret) the absence of confirmed fulness, in contours, still slight,
  • though compact, elegant, flexible--the exquisite turning of waist,
  • wrist, hand, foot, and ankle satisfied completely my notions of
  • symmetry, and allowed a lightness and freedom of movement which
  • corresponded with my ideas of grace.
  • Thus improved, thus wakened to life, Mdlle. Henri began to take a
  • new footing in the school; her mental power, manifested gradually but
  • steadily, ere long extorted recognition even from the envious; and when
  • the young and healthy saw that she could smile brightly, converse gaily,
  • move with vivacity and alertness, they acknowledged in her a sisterhood
  • of youth and health, and tolerated her as of their kind accordingly.
  • To speak truth, I watched this change much as a gardener watches the
  • growth of a precious plant, and I contributed to it too, even as the
  • said gardener contributes to the development of his favourite. To me it
  • was not difficult to discover how I could best foster my pupil, cherish
  • her starved feelings, and induce the outward manifestation of that
  • inward vigour which sunless drought and blighting blast had hitherto
  • forbidden to expand. Constancy of attention--a kindness as mute
  • as watchful, always standing by her, cloaked in the rough garb of
  • austerity, and making its real nature known only by a rare glance of
  • interest, or a cordial and gentle word; real respect masked with seeming
  • imperiousness, directing, urging her actions, yet helping her too, and
  • that with devoted care: these were the means I used, for these means
  • best suited Frances’ feelings, as susceptible as deep vibrating--her
  • nature at once proud and shy.
  • The benefits of my system became apparent also in her altered demeanour
  • as a teacher; she now took her place amongst her pupils with an air
  • of spirit and firmness which assured them at once that she meant to be
  • obeyed--and obeyed she was. They felt they had lost their power over
  • her. If any girl had rebelled, she would no longer have taken her
  • rebellion to heart; she possessed a source of comfort they could not
  • drain, a pillar of support they could not overthrow: formerly, when
  • insulted, she wept; now, she smiled.
  • The public reading of one of her devoirs achieved the revelation of her
  • talents to all and sundry; I remember the subject--it was an emigrant’s
  • letter to his friends at home. It opened with simplicity; some natural
  • and graphic touches disclosed to the reader the scene of virgin forest
  • and great, New-World river--barren of sail and flag--amidst which the
  • epistle was supposed to be indited. The difficulties and dangers that
  • attend a settler’s life, were hinted at; and in the few words said on
  • that subject, Mdlle. Henri failed not to render audible the voice of
  • resolve, patience, endeavour. The disasters which had driven him
  • from his native country were alluded to; stainless honour, inflexible
  • independence, indestructible self-respect there took the word. Past
  • days were spoken of; the grief of parting, the regrets of absence, were
  • touched upon; feeling, forcible and fine, breathed eloquent in every
  • period. At the close, consolation was suggested; religious faith became
  • there the speaker, and she spoke well.
  • The devoir was powerfully written in language at once chaste and choice,
  • in a style nerved with vigour and graced with harmony.
  • Mdlle. Reuter was quite sufficiently acquainted with English to
  • understand it when read or spoken in her presence, though she could
  • neither speak nor write it herself. During the perusal of this devoir,
  • she sat placidly busy, her eyes and fingers occupied with the formation
  • of a “riviere” or open-work hem round a cambric handkerchief; she
  • said nothing, and her face and forehead, clothed with a mask of purely
  • negative expression, were as blank of comment as her lips. As neither
  • surprise, pleasure, approbation, nor interest were evinced in her
  • countenance, so no more were disdain, envy, annoyance, weariness; if
  • that inscrutable mien said anything, it was simply this--
  • “The matter is too trite to excite an emotion, or call forth an
  • opinion.”
  • As soon as I had done, a hum rose; several of the pupils, pressing round
  • Mdlle. Henri, began to beset her with compliments; the composed voice of
  • the directress was now heard:--
  • “Young ladies, such of you as have cloaks and umbrellas will hasten
  • to return home before the shower becomes heavier” (it was raining a
  • little), “the remainder will wait till their respective servants arrive
  • to fetch them.” And the school dispersed, for it was four o’clock.
  • “Monsieur, a word,” said Mdlle. Reuter, stepping on to the estrade, and
  • signifying, by a movement of the hand, that she wished me to relinquish,
  • for an instant, the castor I had clutched.
  • “Mademoiselle, I am at your service.”
  • “Monsieur, it is of course an excellent plan to encourage effort in
  • young people by making conspicuous the progress of any particularly
  • industrious pupil; but do you not think that in the present instance,
  • Mdlle. Henri can hardly be considered as a concurrent with the other
  • pupils? She is older than most of them, and has had advantages of an
  • exclusive nature for acquiring a knowledge of English; on the other
  • hand, her sphere of life is somewhat beneath theirs; under these
  • circumstances, a public distinction, conferred upon Mdlle. Henri, may be
  • the means of suggesting comparisons, and exciting feelings such as would
  • be far from advantageous to the individual forming their object. The
  • interest I take in Mdlle. Henri’s real welfare makes me desirous of
  • screening her from annoyances of this sort; besides, monsieur, as I
  • have before hinted to you, the sentiment of AMOUR-PROPRE has a somewhat
  • marked preponderance in her character; celebrity has a tendency to
  • foster this sentiment, and in her it should be rather repressed--she
  • rather needs keeping down than bringing forward; and then I think,
  • monsieur--it appears to me that ambition, LITERARY ambition especially,
  • is not a feeling to be cherished in the mind of a woman: would not
  • Mdlle. Henri be much safer and happier if taught to believe that in the
  • quiet discharge of social duties consists her real vocation, than if
  • stimulated to aspire after applause and publicity? She may never marry;
  • scanty as are her resources, obscure as are her connections, uncertain
  • as is her health (for I think her consumptive, her mother died of that
  • complaint), it is more than probable she never will. I do not see how
  • she can rise to a position, whence such a step would be possible; but
  • even in celibacy it would be better for her to retain the character and
  • habits of a respectable decorous female.”
  • “Indisputably, mademoiselle,” was my answer. “Your opinion admits of no
  • doubt;” and, fearful of the harangue being renewed, I retreated under
  • cover of that cordial sentence of assent.
  • At the date of a fortnight after the little incident noted above, I find
  • it recorded in my diary that a hiatus occurred in Mdlle. Henri’s usually
  • regular attendance in class. The first day or two I wondered at her
  • absence, but did not like to ask an explanation of it; I thought indeed
  • some chance word might be dropped which would afford me the information
  • I wished to obtain, without my running the risk of exciting silly smiles
  • and gossiping whispers by demanding it. But when a week passed and
  • the seat at the desk near the door still remained vacant, and when
  • no allusion was made to the circumstance by any individual of the
  • class--when, on the contrary, I found that all observed a marked silence
  • on the point--I determined, COUTE QUI COUTE, to break the ice of this
  • silly reserve. I selected Sylvie as my informant, because from her I
  • knew that I should at least get a sensible answer, unaccompanied by
  • wriggle, titter, or other flourish of folly.
  • “Ou donc est Mdlle. Henri?” I said one day as I returned an
  • exercise-book I had been examining.
  • “Elle est partie, monsieur.”
  • “Partie? et pour combien de temps? Quand reviendra-t-elle?”
  • “Elle est partie pour toujours, monsieur; elle ne reviendra plus.”
  • “Ah!” was my involuntary exclamation; then after a pause:--
  • “En etes-vous bien sure, Sylvie?”
  • “Oui, oui, monsieur, mademoiselle la directrice nous l’a dit elle-meme
  • il y a deux ou trois jours.”
  • And I could pursue my inquiries no further; time, place, and
  • circumstances forbade my adding another word. I could neither comment on
  • what had been said, nor demand further particulars. A question as to the
  • reason of the teacher’s departure, as to whether it had been voluntary
  • or otherwise, was indeed on my lips, but I suppressed it--there were
  • listeners all round. An hour after, in passing Sylvie in the corridor as
  • she was putting on her bonnet, I stopped short and asked:--
  • “Sylvie, do you know Mdlle. Henri’s address? I have some books of hers,”
  • I added carelessly, “and I should wish to send them to her.”
  • “No, monsieur,” replied Sylvie; “but perhaps Rosalie, the portress, will
  • be able to give it you.”
  • Rosalie’s cabinet was just at hand; I stepped in and repeated the
  • inquiry. Rosalie--a smart French grisette--looked up from her work with
  • a knowing smile, precisely the sort of smile I had been so desirous to
  • avoid exciting. Her answer was prepared; she knew nothing whatever
  • of Mdlle. Henri’s address--had never known it. Turning from her with
  • impatience--for I believed she lied and was hired to lie--I almost
  • knocked down some one who had been standing at my back; it was the
  • directress. My abrupt movement made her recoil two or three steps. I was
  • obliged to apologize, which I did more concisely than politely. No man
  • likes to be dogged, and in the very irritable mood in which I then
  • was the sight of Mdlle. Reuter thoroughly incensed me. At the moment I
  • turned her countenance looked hard, dark, and inquisitive; her eyes
  • were bent upon me with an expression of almost hungry curiosity. I had
  • scarcely caught this phase of physiognomy ere it had vanished; a
  • bland smile played on her features; my harsh apology was received with
  • good-humoured facility.
  • “Oh, don’t mention it, monsieur; you only touched my hair with your
  • elbow; it is no worse, only a little dishevelled.” She shook it back,
  • and passing her fingers through her curls, loosened them into more
  • numerous and flowing ringlets. Then she went on with vivacity:
  • “Rosalie, I was coming to tell you to go instantly and close the windows
  • of the salon; the wind is rising, and the muslin curtains will be
  • covered with dust.”
  • Rosalie departed. “Now,” thought I, “this will not do; Mdlle. Reuter
  • thinks her meanness in eaves-dropping is screened by her art in devising
  • a pretext, whereas the muslin curtains she speaks of are not more
  • transparent than this same pretext.” An impulse came over me to thrust
  • the flimsy screen aside, and confront her craft boldly with a word or
  • two of plain truth. “The rough-shod foot treads most firmly on slippery
  • ground,” thought I; so I began:
  • “Mademoiselle Henri has left your establishment--been dismissed, I
  • presume?”
  • “Ah, I wished to have a little conversation with you, monsieur,” replied
  • the directress with the most natural and affable air in the world;
  • “but we cannot talk quietly here; will Monsieur step into the garden a
  • minute?” And she preceded me, stepping out through the glass-door I have
  • before mentioned.
  • “There,” said she, when we had reached the centre of the middle alley,
  • and when the foliage of shrubs and trees, now in their summer pride,
  • closing behind and around us, shut out the view of the house, and thus
  • imparted a sense of seclusion even to this little plot of ground in the
  • very core of a capital.
  • “There, one feels quiet and free when there are only pear-trees and
  • rose-bushes about one; I dare say you, like me, monsieur, are sometimes
  • tired of being eternally in the midst of life; of having human faces
  • always round you, human eyes always upon you, human voices always in
  • your ear. I am sure I often wish intensely for liberty to spend a whole
  • month in the country at some little farm-house, bien gentille, bien
  • propre, tout entouree de champs et de bois; quelle vie charmante que la
  • vie champetre! N’est-ce pas, monsieur?”
  • “Cela depend, mademoiselle.”
  • “Que le vent est bon et frais!” continued the directress; and she was
  • right there, for it was a south wind, soft and sweet. I carried my hat
  • in my hand, and this gentle breeze, passing through my hair, soothed my
  • temples like balm. Its refreshing effect, however, penetrated no deeper
  • than the mere surface of the frame; for as I walked by the side of
  • Mdlle. Reuter, my heart was still hot within me, and while I was musing
  • the fire burned; then spake I with my tongue:--
  • “I understand Mdlle. Henri is gone from hence, and will not return?”
  • “Ah, true! I meant to have named the subject to you some days ago, but
  • my time is so completely taken up, I cannot do half the things I wish:
  • have you never experienced what it is, monsieur, to find the day too
  • short by twelve hours for your numerous duties?”
  • “Not often. Mdlle. Henri’s departure was not voluntary, I presume? If it
  • had been, she would certainly have given me some intimation of it, being
  • my pupil.”
  • “Oh, did she not tell you? that was strange; for my part, I never
  • thought of adverting to the subject; when one has so many things to
  • attend to, one is apt to forget little incidents that are not of primary
  • importance.”
  • “You consider Mdlle. Henri’s dismission, then, as a very insignificant
  • event?”
  • “Dismission? Ah! she was not dismissed; I can say with truth, monsieur,
  • that since I became the head of this establishment no master or teacher
  • has ever been dismissed from it.”
  • “Yet some have left it, mademoiselle?”
  • “Many; I have found it necessary to change frequently--a change of
  • instructors is often beneficial to the interests of a school; it gives
  • life and variety to the proceedings; it amuses the pupils, and suggests
  • to the parents the idea of exertion and progress.”
  • “Yet when you are tired of a professor or maitresse, you scruple to
  • dismiss them?”
  • “No need to have recourse to such extreme measures, I assure you.
  • Allons, monsieur le professeur--asseyons-nous; je vais vous donner une
  • petite lecon dans votre etat d’instituteur.” (I wish I might write
  • all she said to me in French--it loses sadly by being translated into
  • English.) We had now reached THE garden-chair; the directress sat down,
  • and signed to me to sit by her, but I only rested my knee on the seat,
  • and stood leaning my head and arm against the embowering branch of a
  • huge laburnum, whose golden flowers, blent with the dusky green leaves
  • of a lilac-bush, formed a mixed arch of shade and sunshine over the
  • retreat. Mdlle. Reuter sat silent a moment; some novel movements were
  • evidently working in her mind, and they showed their nature on her
  • astute brow; she was meditating some CHEF D’OEUVRE of policy. Convinced
  • by several months’ experience that the affectation of virtues she did
  • not possess was unavailing to ensnare me--aware that I had read her real
  • nature, and would believe nothing of the character she gave out as being
  • hers--she had determined, at last, to try a new key, and see if the lock
  • of my heart would yield to that; a little audacity, a word of truth, a
  • glimpse of the real. “Yes, I will try,” was her inward resolve; and then
  • her blue eye glittered upon me--it did not flash--nothing of flame ever
  • kindled in its temperate gleam.
  • “Monsieur fears to sit by me?” she inquired playfully.
  • “I have no wish to usurp Pelet’s place,” I answered, for I had got the
  • habit of speaking to her bluntly--a habit begun in anger, but continued
  • because I saw that, instead of offending, it fascinated her. She cast
  • down her eyes, and drooped her eyelids; she sighed uneasily; she turned
  • with an anxious gesture, as if she would give me the idea of a bird that
  • flutters in its cage, and would fain fly from its jail and jailer, and
  • seek its natural mate and pleasant nest.
  • “Well--and your lesson?” I demanded briefly.
  • “Ah!” she exclaimed, recovering herself, “you are so young, so frank
  • and fearless, so talented, so impatient of imbecility, so disdainful of
  • vulgarity, you need a lesson; here it is then: far more is to be done
  • in this world by dexterity than by strength; but, perhaps, you knew
  • that before, for there is delicacy as well as power in your
  • character--policy, as well as pride?”
  • “Go on,” said I; and I could hardly help smiling, the flattery was so
  • piquant, so finely seasoned. She caught the prohibited smile, though I
  • passed my hand over my month to conceal it; and again she made room for
  • me to sit beside her. I shook my head, though temptation penetrated to
  • my senses at the moment, and once more I told her to go on.
  • “Well, then, if ever you are at the head of a large establishment,
  • dismiss nobody. To speak truth, monsieur (and to you I will speak
  • truth), I despise people who are always making rows, blustering, sending
  • off one to the right, and another to the left, urging and hurrying
  • circumstances. I’ll tell you what I like best to do, monsieur, shall I?”
  • She looked up again; she had compounded her glance well this time--much
  • archness, more deference, a spicy dash of coquetry, an unveiled
  • consciousness of capacity. I nodded; she treated me like the great
  • Mogul; so I became the great Mogul as far as she was concerned.
  • “I like, monsieur, to take my knitting in my hands, and to sit quietly
  • down in my chair; circumstances defile past me; I watch their march; so
  • long as they follow the course I wish, I say nothing, and do nothing; I
  • don’t clap my hands, and cry out ‘Bravo! How lucky I am!’ to attract
  • the attention and envy of my neighbours--I am merely passive; but when
  • events fall out ill--when circumstances become adverse--I watch very
  • vigilantly; I knit on still, and still I hold my tongue; but every now
  • and then, monsieur, I just put my toe out--so--and give the rebellious
  • circumstance a little secret push, without noise, which sends it the way
  • I wish, and I am successful after all, and nobody has seen my expedient.
  • So, when teachers or masters become troublesome and inefficient--when,
  • in short, the interests of the school would suffer from their retaining
  • their places--I mind my knitting, events progress, circumstances glide
  • past; I see one which, if pushed ever so little awry, will render
  • untenable the post I wish to have vacated--the deed is done--the
  • stumbling-block removed--and no one saw me: I have not made an enemy, I
  • am rid of an incumbrance.”
  • A moment since, and I thought her alluring; this speech concluded, I
  • looked on her with distaste. “Just like you,” was my cold answer.
  • “And in this way you have ousted Mdlle. Henri? You wanted her office,
  • therefore you rendered it intolerable to her?”
  • “Not at all, monsieur, I was merely anxious about Mdlle. Henri’s health;
  • no, your moral sight is clear and piercing, but there you have failed
  • to discover the truth. I took--I have always taken a real interest in
  • Mdlle. Henri’s welfare; I did not like her going out in all weathers;
  • I thought it would be more advantageous for her to obtain a permanent
  • situation; besides, I considered her now qualified to do something more
  • than teach sewing. I reasoned with her; left the decision to herself;
  • she saw the correctness of my views, and adopted them.”
  • “Excellent! and now, mademoiselle, you will have the goodness to give me
  • her address.”
  • “Her address!” and a sombre and stony change came over the mien of
  • the directress. “Her address? Ah?--well--I wish I could oblige you,
  • monsieur, but I cannot, and I will tell you why; whenever I myself asked
  • her for her address, she always evaded the inquiry. I thought--I may
  • be wrong--but I THOUGHT her motive for doing so, was a natural, though
  • mistaken reluctance to introduce me to some, probably, very poor
  • abode; her means were narrow, her origin obscure; she lives somewhere,
  • doubtless, in the ‘basse ville.’”
  • “I’ll not lose sight of my best pupil yet,” said I, “though she were
  • born of beggars and lodged in a cellar; for the rest, it is absurd to
  • make a bugbear of her origin to me--I happen to know that she was a
  • Swiss pastor’s daughter, neither more nor less; and, as to her narrow
  • means, I care nothing for the poverty of her purse so long as her heart
  • overflows with affluence.”
  • “Your sentiments are perfectly noble, monsieur,” said the directress,
  • affecting to suppress a yawn; her sprightliness was now extinct, her
  • temporary candour shut up; the little, red-coloured, piratical-looking
  • pennon of audacity she had allowed to float a minute in the air, was
  • furled, and the broad, sober-hued flag of dissimulation again hung
  • low over the citadel. I did not like her thus, so I cut short the
  • TETE-A-TETE and departed.
  • CHAPTER XIX.
  • NOVELISTS should never allow themselves to weary of the study of real
  • life. If they observed this duty conscientiously, they would give us
  • fewer pictures chequered with vivid contrasts of light and shade;
  • they would seldom elevate their heroes and heroines to the heights of
  • rapture--still seldomer sink them to the depths of despair; for if we
  • rarely taste the fulness of joy in this life, we yet more rarely savour
  • the acrid bitterness of hopeless anguish; unless, indeed, we have
  • plunged like beasts into sensual indulgence, abused, strained,
  • stimulated, again overstrained, and, at last, destroyed our faculties
  • for enjoyment; then, truly, we may find ourselves without support,
  • robbed of hope. Our agony is great, and how can it end? We have broken
  • the spring of our powers; life must be all suffering--too feeble to
  • conceive faith--death must be darkness--God, spirits, religion can have
  • no place in our collapsed minds, where linger only hideous and polluting
  • recollections of vice; and time brings us on to the brink of the grave,
  • and dissolution flings us in--a rag eaten through and through with
  • disease, wrung together with pain, stamped into the churchyard sod by
  • the inexorable heel of despair.
  • But the man of regular life and rational mind never despairs. He loses
  • his property--it is a blow--he staggers a moment; then, his energies,
  • roused by the smart, are at work to seek a remedy; activity soon
  • mitigates regret. Sickness affects him; he takes patience--endures what
  • he cannot cure. Acute pain racks him; his writhing limbs know not where
  • to find rest; he leans on Hope’s anchors. Death takes from him what
  • he loves; roots up, and tears violently away the stem round which his
  • affections were twined--a dark, dismal time, a frightful wrench--but
  • some morning Religion looks into his desolate house with sunrise, and
  • says, that in another world, another life, he shall meet his kindred
  • again. She speaks of that world as a place unsullied by sin--of that
  • life, as an era unembittered by suffering; she mightily strengthens
  • her consolation by connecting with it two ideas--which mortals cannot
  • comprehend, but on which they love to repose--Eternity, Immortality; and
  • the mind of the mourner, being filled with an image, faint yet glorious,
  • of heavenly hills all light and peace--of a spirit resting there in
  • bliss--of a day when his spirit shall also alight there, free and
  • disembodied--of a reunion perfected by love, purified from fear--he
  • takes courage--goes out to encounter the necessities and discharge the
  • duties of life; and, though sadness may never lift her burden from his
  • mind, Hope will enable him to support it.
  • Well--and what suggested all this? and what is the inference to be drawn
  • therefrom? What suggested it, is the circumstance of my best pupil--my
  • treasure--being snatched from my hands, and put away out of my reach;
  • the inference to be drawn from it is--that, being a steady, reasonable
  • man, I did not allow the resentment, disappointment, and grief,
  • engendered in my mind by this evil chance, to grow there to any
  • monstrous size; nor did I allow them to monopolize the whole space of my
  • heart; I pent them, on the contrary, in one strait and secret nook. In
  • the daytime, too, when I was about my duties, I put them on the silent
  • system; and it was only after I had closed the door of my chamber
  • at night that I somewhat relaxed my severity towards these morose
  • nurslings, and allowed vent to their language of murmurs; then, in
  • revenge, they sat on my pillow, haunted my bed, and kept me awake with
  • their long, midnight cry.
  • A week passed. I had said nothing more to Mdlle. Reuter. I had been calm
  • in my demeanour to her, though stony cold and hard. When I looked at
  • her, it was with the glance fitting to be bestowed on one who I knew
  • had consulted jealousy as an adviser, and employed treachery as an
  • instrument--the glance of quiet disdain and rooted distrust. On Saturday
  • evening, ere I left the house, I stept into the SALLE-A-MANGER, where
  • she was sitting alone, and, placing myself before her, I asked, with
  • the same tranquil tone and manner that I should have used had I put the
  • question for the first time--
  • “Mademoiselle, will you have the goodness to give me the address of
  • Frances Evans Henri?”
  • A little surprised, but not disconcerted, she smilingly disclaimed any
  • knowledge of that address, adding, “Monsieur has perhaps forgotten that
  • I explained all about that circumstance before--a week ago?”
  • “Mademoiselle,” I continued, “you would greatly oblige me by directing
  • me to that young person’s abode.”
  • She seemed somewhat puzzled; and, at last, looking up with an admirably
  • counterfeited air of naivete, she demanded, “Does Monsieur think I am
  • telling an untruth?”
  • Still avoiding to give her a direct answer, I said, “It is not then your
  • intention, mademoiselle, to oblige me in this particular?”
  • “But, monsieur, how can I tell you what I do not know?”
  • “Very well; I understand you perfectly, mademoiselle, and now I have
  • only two or three words to say. This is the last week in July; in
  • another month the vacation will commence, have the goodness to avail
  • yourself of the leisure it will afford you to look out for another
  • English master--at the close of August, I shall be under the necessity
  • of resigning my post in your establishment.”
  • I did not wait for her comments on this announcement, but bowed and
  • immediately withdrew.
  • That same evening, soon after dinner, a servant brought me a small
  • packet; it was directed in a hand I knew, but had not hoped so soon to
  • see again; being in my own apartment and alone, there was nothing to
  • prevent my immediately opening it; it contained four five-franc pieces,
  • and a note in English.
  • “MONSIEUR,
  • “I came to Mdlle. Reuter’s house yesterday, at the time when I knew you
  • would be just about finishing your lesson, and I asked if I might go
  • into the schoolroom and speak to you. Mdlle. Reuter came out and said
  • you were already gone; it had not yet struck four, so I thought she must
  • be mistaken, but concluded it would be vain to call another day on the
  • same errand. In one sense a note will do as well--it will wrap up the
  • 20 francs, the price of the lessons I have received from you; and if it
  • will not fully express the thanks I owe you in addition--if it will not
  • bid you good-bye as I could wish to have done--if it will not tell you,
  • as I long to do, how sorry I am that I shall probably never see you
  • more--why, spoken words would hardly be more adequate to the task. Had
  • I seen you, I should probably have stammered out something feeble and
  • unsatisfactory--something belying my feelings rather than explaining
  • them; so it is perhaps as well that I was denied admission to your
  • presence. You often remarked, monsieur, that my devoirs dwelt a great
  • deal on fortitude in bearing grief--you said I introduced that theme too
  • often: I find indeed that it is much easier to write about a severe duty
  • than to perform it, for I am oppressed when I see and feel to what a
  • reverse fate has condemned me; you were kind to me, monsieur--very kind;
  • I am afflicted--I am heart-broken to be quite separated from you; soon
  • I shall have no friend on earth. But it is useless troubling you with my
  • distresses. What claim have I on your sympathy? None; I will then say no
  • more.
  • “Farewell, Monsieur.
  • “F. E. HENRI.”
  • I put up the note in my pocket-book. I slipped the five-franc pieces
  • into my purse--then I took a turn through my narrow chamber.
  • “Mdlle. Reuter talked about her poverty,” said I, “and she is poor;
  • yet she pays her debts and more. I have not yet given her a quarter’s
  • lessons, and she has sent me a quarter’s due. I wonder of what she
  • deprived herself to scrape together the twenty francs--I wonder what
  • sort of a place she has to live in, and what sort of a woman her aunt
  • is, and whether she is likely to get employment to supply the place she
  • has lost. No doubt she will have to trudge about long enough from school
  • to school, to inquire here, and apply there--be rejected in this place,
  • disappointed in that. Many an evening she’ll go to her bed tired
  • and unsuccessful. And the directress would not let her in to bid me
  • good-bye? I might not have the chance of standing with her for a few
  • minutes at a window in the schoolroom and exchanging some half-dozen of
  • sentences--getting to know where she lived--putting matters in train
  • for having all things arranged to my mind? No address on the note”--I
  • continued, drawing it again from the pocket-book and examining it on
  • each side of the two leaves: “women are women, that is certain, and
  • always do business like women; men mechanically put a date and address
  • to their communications. And these five-franc pieces?”--(I hauled them
  • forth from my purse)--“if she had offered me them herself instead of
  • tying them up with a thread of green silk in a kind of Lilliputian
  • packet, I could have thrust them back into her little hand, and shut
  • up the small, taper fingers over them--so--and compelled her shame, her
  • pride, her shyness, all to yield to a little bit of determined Will--now
  • where is she? How can I get at her?”
  • Opening my chamber door I walked down into the kitchen.
  • “Who brought the packet?” I asked of the servant who had delivered it to
  • me.
  • “Un petit commissionaire, monsieur.”
  • “Did he say anything?”
  • “Rien.”
  • And I wended my way up the back-stairs, wondrously the wiser for my
  • inquiries.
  • “No matter,” said I to myself, as I again closed the door. “No
  • matter--I’ll seek her through Brussels.”
  • And I did. I sought her day by day whenever I had a moment’s leisure,
  • for four weeks; I sought her on Sundays all day long; I sought her on
  • the Boulevards, in the Allee Verte, in the Park; I sought her in Ste.
  • Gudule and St. Jacques; I sought her in the two Protestant chapels; I
  • attended these latter at the German, French, and English services, not
  • doubting that I should meet her at one of them. All my researches were
  • absolutely fruitless; my security on the last point was proved by the
  • event to be equally groundless with my other calculations. I stood
  • at the door of each chapel after the service, and waited till every
  • individual had come out, scrutinizing every gown draping a slender form,
  • peering under every bonnet covering a young head. In vain; I saw
  • girlish figures pass me, drawing their black scarfs over their sloping
  • shoulders, but none of them had the exact turn and air of Mdlle.
  • Henri’s; I saw pale and thoughtful faces “encadrees” in bands of brown
  • hair, but I never found her forehead, her eyes, her eyebrows. All the
  • features of all the faces I met seemed frittered away, because my eye
  • failed to recognize the peculiarities it was bent upon; an ample space
  • of brow and a large, dark, and serious eye, with a fine but decided line
  • of eyebrow traced above.
  • “She has probably left Brussels--perhaps is gone to England, as she
  • said she would,” muttered I inwardly, as on the afternoon of the fourth
  • Sunday, I turned from the door of the chapel-royal which the door-keeper
  • had just closed and locked, and followed in the wake of the last of the
  • congregation, now dispersed and dispersing over the square. I had
  • soon outwalked the couples of English gentlemen and ladies. (Gracious
  • goodness! why don’t they dress better? My eye is yet filled with visions
  • of the high-flounced, slovenly, and tumbled dresses in costly silk and
  • satin, of the large unbecoming collars in expensive lace; of the ill-cut
  • coats and strangely fashioned pantaloons which every Sunday, at the
  • English service, filled the choirs of the chapel-royal, and after it,
  • issuing forth into the square, came into disadvantageous contrast with
  • freshly and trimly attired foreign figures, hastening to attend salut
  • at the church of Coburg.) I had passed these pairs of Britons, and
  • the groups of pretty British children, and the British footmen and
  • waiting-maids; I had crossed the Place Royale, and got into the Rue
  • Royale, thence I had diverged into the Rue de Louvain--an old and quiet
  • street. I remember that, feeling a little hungry, and not desiring to
  • go back and take my share of the “gouter,” now on the refectory-table
  • at Pelet’s--to wit, pistolets and water--I stepped into a baker’s and
  • refreshed myself on a COUC(?)--it is a Flemish word, I don’t know how
  • to spell it--A CORINTHE-ANGLICE, a currant bun--and a cup of coffee; and
  • then I strolled on towards the Porte de Louvain. Very soon I was out of
  • the city, and slowly mounting the hill, which ascends from the gate, I
  • took my time; for the afternoon, though cloudy, was very sultry, and not
  • a breeze stirred to refresh the atmosphere. No inhabitant of Brussels
  • need wander far to search for solitude; let him but move half a league
  • from his own city and he will find her brooding still and blank over
  • the wide fields, so drear though so fertile, spread out treeless and
  • trackless round the capital of Brabant. Having gained the summit of the
  • hill, and having stood and looked long over the cultured but lifeless
  • campaign, I felt a wish to quit the high road, which I had hitherto
  • followed, and get in among those tilled grounds--fertile as the beds
  • of a Brobdignagian kitchen-garden--spreading far and wide even to the
  • boundaries of the horizon, where, from a dusk green, distance changed
  • them to a sullen blue, and confused their tints with those of the livid
  • and thunderous-looking sky. Accordingly I turned up a by-path to the
  • right; I had not followed it far ere it brought me, as I expected, into
  • the fields, amidst which, just before me, stretched a long and lofty
  • white wall enclosing, as it seemed from the foliage showing above, some
  • thickly planted nursery of yew and cypress, for of that species were
  • the branches resting on the pale parapets, and crowding gloomily about a
  • massive cross, planted doubtless on a central eminence and extending its
  • arms, which seemed of black marble, over the summits of those sinister
  • trees. I approached, wondering to what house this well-protected garden
  • appertained; I turned the angle of the wall, thinking to see some
  • stately residence; I was close upon great iron gates; there was a
  • hut serving for a lodge near, but I had no occasion to apply for the
  • key--the gates were open; I pushed one leaf back--rain had rusted
  • its hinges, for it groaned dolefully as they revolved. Thick planting
  • embowered the entrance. Passing up the avenue, I saw objects on
  • each hand which, in their own mute language of inscription and sign,
  • explained clearly to what abode I had made my way. This was the
  • house appointed for all living; crosses, monuments, and garlands of
  • everlastings announced, “The Protestant Cemetery, outside the gate of
  • Louvain.”
  • The place was large enough to afford half an hour’s strolling without
  • the monotony of treading continually the same path; and, for those who
  • love to peruse the annals of graveyards, here was variety of inscription
  • enough to occupy the attention for double or treble that space of time.
  • Hither people of many kindreds, tongues, and nations, had brought their
  • dead for interment; and here, on pages of stone, of marble, and of
  • brass, were written names, dates, last tributes of pomp or love, in
  • English, in French, in German, and Latin. Here the Englishman had
  • erected a marble monument over the remains of his Mary Smith or Jane
  • Brown, and inscribed it only with her name. There the French widower had
  • shaded the grave of his Elmire or Celestine with a brilliant thicket
  • of roses, amidst which a little tablet rising, bore an equally bright
  • testimony to her countless virtues. Every nation, tribe, and kindred,
  • mourned after its own fashion; and how soundless was the mourning of
  • all! My own tread, though slow and upon smooth-rolled paths, seemed to
  • startle, because it formed the sole break to a silence otherwise total.
  • Not only the winds, but the very fitful, wandering airs, were that
  • afternoon, as by common consent, all fallen asleep in their various
  • quarters; the north was hushed, the south silent, the east sobbed not,
  • nor did the west whisper. The clouds in heaven were condensed and
  • dull, but apparently quite motionless. Under the trees of this cemetery
  • nestled a warm breathless gloom, out of which the cypresses stood up
  • straight and mute, above which the willows hung low and still; where
  • the flowers, as languid as fair, waited listless for night dew or
  • thunder-shower; where the tombs, and those they hid, lay impassible to
  • sun or shadow, to rain or drought.
  • Importuned by the sound of my own footsteps, I turned off upon the turf,
  • and slowly advanced to a grove of yews; I saw something stir among the
  • stems; I thought it might be a broken branch swinging, my short-sighted
  • vision had caught no form, only a sense of motion; but the dusky shade
  • passed on, appearing and disappearing at the openings in the avenue. I
  • soon discerned it was a living thing, and a human thing; and, drawing
  • nearer, I perceived it was a woman, pacing slowly to and fro, and
  • evidently deeming herself alone as I had deemed myself alone, and
  • meditating as I had been meditating. Ere long she returned to a seat
  • which I fancy she had but just quitted, or I should have caught sight
  • of her before. It was in a nook, screened by a clump of trees; there was
  • the white wall before her, and a little stone set up against the wall,
  • and, at the foot of the stone, was an allotment of turf freshly turned
  • up, a new-made grave. I put on my spectacles, and passed softly close
  • behind her; glancing at the inscription on the stone, I read, “Julienne
  • Henri, died at Brussels, aged sixty. August 10th, 18--.” Having perused
  • the inscription, I looked down at the form sitting bent and thoughtful
  • just under my eyes, unconscious of the vicinity of any living thing; it
  • was a slim, youthful figure in mourning apparel of the plainest black
  • stuff, with a little simple, black crape bonnet; I felt, as well as
  • saw, who it was; and, moving neither hand nor foot, I stood some moments
  • enjoying the security of conviction. I had sought her for a month, and
  • had never discovered one of her traces--never met a hope, or seized
  • a chance of encountering her anywhere. I had been forced to loosen my
  • grasp on expectation; and, but an hour ago, had sunk slackly under
  • the discouraging thought that the current of life, and the impulse
  • of destiny, had swept her for ever from my reach; and, behold, while
  • bending suddenly earthward beneath the pressure of despondency--while
  • following with my eyes the track of sorrow on the turf of a
  • graveyard--here was my lost jewel dropped on the tear-fed herbage,
  • nestling in the messy and mouldy roots of yew-trees.
  • Frances sat very quiet, her elbow on her knee, and her head on her hand.
  • I knew she could retain a thinking attitude a long time without change;
  • at last, a tear fell; she had been looking at the name on the
  • stone before her, and her heart had no doubt endured one of those
  • constrictions with which the desolate living, regretting the dead, are,
  • at times, so sorely oppressed. Many tears rolled down, which she wiped
  • away, again and again, with her handkerchief; some distressed sobs
  • escaped her, and then, the paroxysm over, she sat quiet as before. I put
  • my hand gently on her shoulder; no need further to prepare her, for
  • she was neither hysterical nor liable to fainting-fits; a sudden push,
  • indeed, might have startled her, but the contact of my quiet touch
  • merely woke attention as I wished; and, though she turned quickly, yet
  • so lightning-swift is thought--in some minds especially--I believe the
  • wonder of what--the consciousness of who it was that thus stole unawares
  • on her solitude, had passed through her brain, and flashed into her
  • heart, even before she had effected that hasty movement; at least,
  • Amazement had hardly opened her eyes and raised them to mine, ere
  • Recognition informed their irids with most speaking brightness. Nervous
  • surprise had hardly discomposed her features ere a sentiment of most
  • vivid joy shone clear and warm on her whole countenance. I had hardly
  • time to observe that she was wasted and pale, ere called to feel a
  • responsive inward pleasure by the sense of most full and exquisite
  • pleasure glowing in the animated flush, and shining in the expansive
  • light, now diffused over my pupil’s face. It was the summer sun flashing
  • out after the heavy summer shower; and what fertilizes more rapidly than
  • that beam, burning almost like fire in its ardour?
  • I hate boldness--that boldness which is of the brassy brow and insensate
  • nerves; but I love the courage of the strong heart, the fervour of the
  • generous blood; I loved with passion the light of Frances Evans’ clear
  • hazel eye when it did not fear to look straight into mine; I loved the
  • tones with which she uttered the words--
  • “Mon maitre! mon maitre!”
  • I loved the movement with which she confided her hand to my hand; I
  • loved her as she stood there, penniless and parentless; for a sensualist
  • charmless, for me a treasure--my best object of sympathy on earth,
  • thinking such thoughts as I thought, feeling such feelings as I felt; my
  • ideal of the shrine in which to seal my stores of love; personification
  • of discretion and forethought, of diligence and perseverance, of
  • self-denial and self-control--those guardians, those trusty keepers of
  • the gift I longed to confer on her--the gift of all my affections;
  • model of truth and honour, of independence and conscientiousness--those
  • refiners and sustainers of an honest life; silent possessor of a well
  • of tenderness, of a flame, as genial as still, as pure as quenchless,
  • of natural feeling, natural passion--those sources of refreshment and
  • comfort to the sanctuary of home. I knew how quietly and how deeply the
  • well bubbled in her heart; I knew how the more dangerous flame burned
  • safely under the eye of reason; I had seen when the fire shot up a
  • moment high and vivid, when the accelerated heat troubled life’s current
  • in its channels; I had seen reason reduce the rebel, and humble its
  • blaze to embers. I had confidence in Frances Evans; I had respect
  • for her, and as I drew her arm through mine, and led her out of the
  • cemetery, I felt I had another sentiment, as strong as confidence, as
  • firm as respect, more fervid than either--that of love.
  • “Well, my pupil,” said I, as the ominous sounding gate swung to behind
  • us--“Well, I have found you again: a month’s search has seemed long,
  • and I little thought to have discovered my lost sheep straying amongst
  • graves.”
  • Never had I addressed her but as “Mademoiselle” before, and to speak
  • thus was to take up a tone new to both her and me. Her answer suprised
  • me that this language ruffled none of her feelings, woke no discord in
  • her heart:
  • “Mon maitre,” she said, “have you troubled yourself to seek me? I little
  • imagined you would think much of my absence, but I grieved bitterly to
  • be taken away from you. I was sorry for that circumstance when heavier
  • troubles ought to have made me forget it.”
  • “Your aunt is dead?”
  • “Yes, a fortnight since, and she died full of regret, which I could not
  • chase from her mind; she kept repeating, even during the last night
  • of her existence, ‘Frances, you will be so lonely when I am gone,
  • so friendless:’ she wished too that she could have been buried in
  • Switzerland, and it was I who persuaded her in her old age to leave the
  • banks of Lake Leman, and to come, only as it seems to die, in this flat
  • region of Flanders. Willingly would I have observed her last wish, and
  • taken her remains back to our own country, but that was impossible; I
  • was forced to lay her here.”
  • “She was ill but a short time, I presume?”
  • “But three weeks. When she began to sink I asked Mdlle. Reuter’s leave
  • to stay with her and wait on her; I readily got leave.”
  • “Do you return to the pensionnat!” I demanded hastily.
  • “Monsieur, when I had been at home a week Mdlle. Reuter called one
  • evening, just after I had got my aunt to bed; she went into her room
  • to speak to her, and was extremely civil and affable, as she always is;
  • afterwards she came and sat with me a long time, and just as she rose to
  • go away, she said: “Mademoiselle, I shall not soon cease to regret your
  • departure from my establishment, though indeed it is true that you have
  • taught your class of pupils so well that they are all quite accomplished
  • in the little works you manage so skilfully, and have not the slightest
  • need of further instruction; my second teacher must in future supply
  • your place, with regard to the younger pupils, as well as she can,
  • though she is indeed an inferior artiste to you, and doubtless it will
  • be your part now to assume a higher position in your calling; I am sure
  • you will everywhere find schools and families willing to profit by your
  • talents.’ And then she paid me my last quarter’s salary. I asked, as
  • mademoiselle would no doubt think, very bluntly, if she designed to
  • discharge me from the establishment. She smiled at my inelegance of
  • speech, and answered that ‘our connection as employer and employed was
  • certainly dissolved, but that she hoped still to retain the pleasure of
  • my acquaintance; she should always be happy to see me as a friend;’ and
  • then she said something about the excellent condition of the streets,
  • and the long continuance of fine weather, and went away quite cheerful.”
  • I laughed inwardly; all this was so like the directress--so like what I
  • had expected and guessed of her conduct; and then the exposure and proof
  • of her lie, unconsciously afforded by Frances:--“She had frequently
  • applied for Mdlle. Henri’s address,” forsooth; “Mdlle. Henri had always
  • evaded giving it,” &c., &c., and here I found her a visitor at the very
  • house of whose locality she had professed absolute ignorance!
  • Any comments I might have intended to make on my pupil’s communication,
  • were checked by the plashing of large rain-drops on our faces and on the
  • path, and by the muttering of a distant but coming storm. The warning
  • obvious in stagnant air and leaden sky had already induced me to take
  • the road leading back to Brussels, and now I hastened my own steps and
  • those of my companion, and, as our way lay downhill, we got on rapidly.
  • There was an interval after the fall of the first broad drops before
  • heavy rain came on; in the meantime we had passed through the Porte de
  • Louvain, and were again in the city.
  • “Where do you live?” I asked; “I will see you safe home.”
  • “Rue Notre Dame aux Neiges,” answered Frances.
  • It was not far from the Rue de Louvain, and we stood on the doorsteps
  • of the house we sought ere the clouds, severing with loud peal and
  • shattered cataract of lightning, emptied their livid folds in a torrent,
  • heavy, prone, and broad.
  • “Come in! come in!” said Frances, as, after putting her into the house,
  • I paused ere I followed: the word decided me; I stepped across the
  • threshold, shut the door on the rushing, flashing, whitening storm, and
  • followed her upstairs to her apartments. Neither she nor I were wet; a
  • projection over the door had warded off the straight-descending flood;
  • none but the first, large drops had touched our garments; one minute
  • more and we should not have had a dry thread on us.
  • Stepping over a little mat of green wool, I found myself in a small room
  • with a painted floor and a square of green carpet in the middle; the
  • articles of furniture were few, but all bright and exquisitely clean;
  • order reigned through its narrow limits--such order as it soothed my
  • punctilious soul to behold. And I had hesitated to enter the abode,
  • because I apprehended after all that Mdlle. Reuter’s hint about its
  • extreme poverty might be too well-founded, and I feared to embarrass the
  • lace-mender by entering her lodgings unawares! Poor the place might be;
  • poor truly it was; but its neatness was better than elegance, and had
  • but a bright little fire shone on that clean hearth, I should have
  • deemed it more attractive than a palace. No fire was there, however, and
  • no fuel laid ready to light; the lace-mender was unable to allow herself
  • that indulgence, especially now when, deprived by death of her sole
  • relative, she had only her own unaided exertions to rely on. Frances
  • went into an inner room to take off her bonnet, and she came out a
  • model of frugal neatness, with her well-fitting black stuff dress, so
  • accurately defining her elegant bust and taper waist, with her spotless
  • white collar turned back from a fair and shapely neck, with her
  • plenteous brown hair arranged in smooth bands on her temples, and in
  • a large Grecian plait behind: ornaments she had none--neither brooch,
  • ring, nor ribbon; she did well enough without them--perfection of fit,
  • proportion of form, grace of carriage, agreeably supplied their place.
  • Her eye, as she re-entered the small sitting-room, instantly sought
  • mine, which was just then lingering on the hearth; I knew she read at
  • once the sort of inward ruth and pitying pain which the chill vacancy of
  • that hearth stirred in my soul: quick to penetrate, quick to determine,
  • and quicker to put in practice, she had in a moment tied a holland apron
  • round her waist; then she disappeared, and reappeared with a basket;
  • it had a cover; she opened it, and produced wood and coal; deftly and
  • compactly she arranged them in the grate.
  • “It is her whole stock, and she will exhaust it out of hospitality,”
  • thought I.
  • “What are you going to do?” I asked: “not surely to light a fire this
  • hot evening? I shall be smothered.”
  • “Indeed, monsieur, I feel it very chilly since the rain began; besides,
  • I must boil the water for my tea, for I take tea on Sundays; you will be
  • obliged to try and bear the heat.”
  • She had struck a light; the wood was already in a blaze; and truly, when
  • contrasted with the darkness, the wild tumult of the tempest without,
  • that peaceful glow which began to beam on the now animated hearth,
  • seemed very cheering. A low, purring sound, from some quarter, announced
  • that another being, besides myself, was pleased with the change; a
  • black cat, roused by the light from its sleep on a little cushioned
  • foot-stool, came and rubbed its head against Frances’ gown as she knelt;
  • she caressed it, saying it had been a favourite with her “pauvre tante
  • Julienne.”
  • The fire being lit, the hearth swept, and a small kettle of a very
  • antique pattern, such as I thought I remembered to have seen in old
  • farmhouses in England, placed over the now ruddy flame, Frances’ hands
  • were washed, and her apron removed in an instant; then she opened a
  • cupboard, and took out a tea-tray, on which she had soon arranged a
  • china tea-equipage, whose pattern, shape, and size, denoted a remote
  • antiquity; a little, old-fashioned silver spoon was deposited in each
  • saucer; and a pair of silver tongs, equally old-fashioned, were laid
  • on the sugar-basin; from the cupboard, too, was produced a tidy
  • silver cream-ewer, not larger then an egg-shell. While making these
  • preparations, she chanced to look up, and, reading curiosity in my eyes,
  • she smiled and asked--
  • “Is this like England, monsieur?”
  • “Like the England of a hundred years ago,” I replied.
  • “Is it truly? Well, everything on this tray is at least a hundred
  • years old: these cups, these spoons, this ewer, are all heirlooms; my
  • great-grandmother left them to my grandmother, she to my mother, and my
  • mother brought them with her from England to Switzerland, and left them
  • to me; and, ever since I was a little girl, I have thought I should like
  • to carry them back to England, whence they came.”
  • She put some pistolets on the table; she made the tea, as foreigners do
  • make tea--i.e., at the rate of a teaspoonful to half-a-dozen cups;
  • she placed me a chair, and, as I took it, she asked, with a sort of
  • exaltation--
  • “Will it make you think yourself at home for a moment?”
  • “If I had a home in England, I believe it would recall it,” I
  • answered; and, in truth, there was a sort of illusion in seeing the
  • fair-complexioned English-looking girl presiding at the English meal,
  • and speaking in the English language.
  • “You have then no home?” was her remark.
  • “None, nor ever have had. If ever I possess a home, it must be of my own
  • making, and the task is yet to begin.” And, as I spoke, a pang, new to
  • me, shot across my heart: it was a pang of mortification at the humility
  • of my position, and the inadequacy of my means; while with that pang was
  • born a strong desire to do more, earn more, be more, possess more;
  • and in the increased possessions, my roused and eager spirit panted to
  • include the home I had never had, the wife I inwardly vowed to win.
  • Frances’ tea was little better than hot water, sugar, and milk; and her
  • pistolets, with which she could not offer me butter, were sweet to my
  • palate as manna.
  • The repast over, and the treasured plate and porcelain being washed and
  • put by, the bright table rubbed still brighter, “le chat de ma tante
  • Julienne” also being fed with provisions brought forth on a plate for
  • its special use, a few stray cinders, and a scattering of ashes too,
  • being swept from the hearth, Frances at last sat down; and then, as she
  • took a chair opposite to me, she betrayed, for the first time, a little
  • embarrassment; and no wonder, for indeed I had unconsciously watched
  • her rather too closely, followed all her steps and all her movements
  • a little too perseveringly with my eyes, for she mesmerized me by
  • the grace and alertness of her action--by the deft, cleanly, and even
  • decorative effect resulting from each touch of her slight and fine
  • fingers; and when, at last, she subsided to stillness, the intelligence
  • of her face seemed beauty to me, and I dwelt on it accordingly. Her
  • colour, however, rising, rather than settling with repose, and her eyes
  • remaining downcast, though I kept waiting for the lids to be raised that
  • I might drink a ray of the light I loved--a light where fire dissolved
  • in softness, where affection tempered penetration, where, just now
  • at least, pleasure played with thought--this expectation not being
  • gratified, I began at last to suspect that I had probably myself to
  • blame for the disappointment; I must cease gazing, and begin talking,
  • if I wished to break the spell under which she now sat motionless; so
  • recollecting the composing effect which an authoritative tone and manner
  • had ever been wont to produce on her, I said--
  • “Get one of your English books, mademoiselle, for the rain yet falls
  • heavily, and will probably detain me half an hour longer.”
  • Released, and set at ease, up she rose, got her book, and accepted at
  • once the chair I placed for her at my side. She had selected “Paradise
  • Lost” from her shelf of classics, thinking, I suppose, the religious
  • character of the book best adapted it to Sunday; I told her to begin at
  • the beginning, and while she read Milton’s invocation to that heavenly
  • muse, who on the “secret top of Oreb or Sinai” had taught the Hebrew
  • shepherd how in the womb of chaos, the conception of a world had
  • originated and ripened, I enjoyed, undisturbed, the treble pleasure of
  • having her near me, hearing the sound of her voice--a sound sweet and
  • satisfying in my ear--and looking, by intervals, at her face: of this
  • last privilege, I chiefly availed myself when I found fault with an
  • intonation, a pause, or an emphasis; as long as I dogmatized, I might
  • also gaze, without exciting too warm a flush.
  • “Enough,” said I, when she had gone through some half dozen pages (a
  • work of time with her, for she read slowly and paused often to ask and
  • receive information)--“enough; and now the rain is ceasing, and I must
  • soon go.” For indeed, at that moment, looking towards the window, I
  • saw it all blue; the thunder-clouds were broken and scattered, and the
  • setting August sun sent a gleam like the reflection of rubies through
  • the lattice. I got up; I drew on my gloves.
  • “You have not yet found another situation to supply the place of that
  • from which you were dismissed by Mdlle. Reuter?”
  • “No, monsieur; I have made inquiries everywhere, but they all ask me
  • for references; and to speak truth, I do not like to apply to the
  • directress, because I consider she acted neither justly nor honourably
  • towards me; she used underhand means to set my pupils against me, and
  • thereby render me unhappy while I held my place in her establishment,
  • and she eventually deprived me of it by a masked and hypocritical
  • manoeuvre, pretending that she was acting for my good, but really
  • snatching from me my chief means of subsistence, at a crisis when not
  • only my own life, but that of another, depended on my exertions: of her
  • I will never more ask a favour.”
  • “How, then, do you propose to get on? How do you live now?”
  • “I have still my lace-mending trade; with care it will keep me from
  • starvation, and I doubt not by dint of exertion to get better employment
  • yet; it is only a fortnight since I began to try; my courage or hopes
  • are by no means worn out yet.”
  • “And if you get what you wish, what then? what are your ultimate views?”
  • “To save enough to cross the Channel: I always look to England as my
  • Canaan.”
  • “Well, well--ere long I shall pay you another visit; good evening now,”
  • and I left her rather abruptly; I had much ado to resist a strong inward
  • impulse, urging me to take a warmer, more expressive leave: what so
  • natural as to fold her for a moment in a close embrace, to imprint one
  • kiss on her cheek or forehead? I was not unreasonable--that was all I
  • wanted; satisfied in that point, I could go away content; and Reason
  • denied me even this; she ordered me to turn my eyes from her face, and
  • my steps from her apartment--to quit her as dryly and coldly as I would
  • have quitted old Madame Pelet. I obeyed, but I swore rancorously to be
  • avenged one day. “I’ll earn a right to do as I please in this matter,
  • or I’ll die in the contest. I have one object before me now--to get that
  • Genevese girl for my wife; and my wife she shall be--that is, provided
  • she has as much, or half as much regard for her master as he has
  • for her. And would she be so docile, so smiling, so happy under my
  • instructions if she had not? would she sit at my side when I dictate
  • or correct, with such a still, contented, halcyon mien?” for I had ever
  • remarked, that however sad or harassed her countenance might be when
  • I entered a room, yet after I had been near her, spoken to her a few
  • words, given her some directions, uttered perhaps some reproofs, she
  • would, all at once, nestle into a nook of happiness, and look up serene
  • and revived. The reproofs suited her best of all: while I scolded she
  • would chip away with her pen-knife at a pencil or a pen; fidgetting a
  • little, pouting a little, defending herself by monosyllables, and when I
  • deprived her of the pen or pencil, fearing it would be all cut away,
  • and when I interdicted even the monosyllabic defence, for the purpose
  • of working up the subdued excitement a little higher, she would at last
  • raise her eyes and give me a certain glance, sweetened with gaiety, and
  • pointed with defiance, which, to speak truth, thrilled me as nothing had
  • ever done, and made me, in a fashion (though happily she did not know
  • it), her subject, if not her slave. After such little scenes her spirits
  • would maintain their flow, often for some hours, and, as I remarked
  • before, her health therefrom took a sustenance and vigour which,
  • previously to the event of her aunt’s death and her dismissal, had
  • almost recreated her whole frame.
  • It has taken me several minutes to write these last sentences; but I had
  • thought all their purport during the brief interval of descending the
  • stairs from Frances’ room. Just as I was opening the outer door,
  • I remembered the twenty francs which I had not restored; I paused:
  • impossible to carry them away with me; difficult to force them back
  • on their original owner; I had now seen her in her own humble abode,
  • witnessed the dignity of her poverty, the pride of order, the fastidious
  • care of conservatism, obvious in the arrangement and economy of her
  • little home; I was sure she would not suffer herself to be excused
  • paying her debts; I was certain the favour of indemnity would be
  • accepted from no hand, perhaps least of all from mine: yet these four
  • five-franc pieces were a burden to my self-respect, and I must get
  • rid of them. An expedient--a clumsy one no doubt, but the best I
  • could devise-suggested itself to me. I darted up the stairs, knocked,
  • re-entered the room as if in haste:--
  • “Mademoiselle, I have forgotten one of my gloves; I must have left it
  • here.”
  • She instantly rose to seek it; as she turned her back, I--being now
  • at the hearth--noiselessly lifted a little vase, one of a set of china
  • ornaments, as old-fashioned as the tea-cups--slipped the money under it,
  • then saying--“Oh here is my glove! I had dropped it within the fender;
  • good evening, mademoiselle,” I made my second exit.
  • Brief as my impromptu return had been, it had afforded me time to pick
  • up a heart-ache; I remarked that Frances had already removed the red
  • embers of her cheerful little fire from the grate: forced to calculate
  • every item, to save in every detail, she had instantly on my departure
  • retrenched a luxury too expensive to be enjoyed alone.
  • “I am glad it is not yet winter,” thought I; “but in two months more
  • come the winds and rains of November; would to God that before then I
  • could earn the right, and the power, to shovel coals into that grate AD
  • LIBITUM!”
  • Already the pavement was drying; a balmy and fresh breeze stirred the
  • air, purified by lightning; I felt the West behind me, where spread a
  • sky like opal; azure immingled with crimson: the enlarged sun, glorious
  • in Tyrian tints, dipped his brim already; stepping, as I was, eastward,
  • I faced a vast bank of clouds, but also I had before me the arch of an
  • evening rainbow; a perfect rainbow--high, wide, vivid. I looked long;
  • my eye drank in the scene, and I suppose my brain must have absorbed
  • it; for that night, after lying awake in pleasant fever a long time,
  • watching the silent sheet-lightning, which still played among the
  • retreating clouds, and flashed silvery over the stars, I at last fell
  • asleep; and then in a dream were reproduced the setting sun, the bank of
  • clouds, the mighty rainbow. I stood, methought, on a terrace; I leaned
  • over a parapeted wall; there was space below me, depth I could not
  • fathom, but hearing an endless dash of waves, I believed it to be the
  • sea; sea spread to the horizon; sea of changeful green and intense
  • blue: all was soft in the distance; all vapour-veiled. A spark of gold
  • glistened on the line between water and air, floated up, approached,
  • enlarged, changed; the object hung midway between heaven and earth,
  • under the arch of the rainbow; the soft but dusk clouds diffused behind.
  • It hovered as on wings; pearly, fleecy, gleaming air streamed like
  • raiment round it; light, tinted with carnation, coloured what seemed
  • face and limbs; a large star shone with still lustre on an angel’s
  • forehead; an upraised arm and hand, glancing like a ray, pointed to the
  • bow overhead, and a voice in my heart whispered--
  • “Hope smiles on Effort!”
  • CHAPTER XX.
  • A COMPETENCY was what I wanted; a competency it was now my aim and
  • resolve to secure; but never had I been farther from the mark. With
  • August the school-year (l’annee scolaire) closed, the examinations
  • concluded, the prizes were adjudged, the schools dispersed, the gates of
  • all colleges, the doors of all pensionnats shut, not to be reopened till
  • the beginning or middle of October. The last day of August was at hand,
  • and what was my position? Had I advanced a step since the commencement
  • of the past quarter? On the contrary, I had receded one. By renouncing
  • my engagement as English master in Mdlle. Reuter’s establishment, I had
  • voluntarily cut off 20l. from my yearly income; I had diminished my 60l.
  • per annum to 40l., and even that sum I now held by a very precarious
  • tenure.
  • It is some time since I made any reference to M. Pelet. The moonlight
  • walk is, I think, the last incident recorded in this narrative where
  • that gentleman cuts any conspicuous figure: the fact is, since that
  • event, a change had come over the spirit of our intercourse. He, indeed,
  • ignorant that the still hour, a cloudless moon, and an open lattice,
  • had revealed to me the secret of his selfish love and false friendship,
  • would have continued smooth and complaisant as ever; but I grew spiny as
  • a porcupine, and inflexible as a blackthorn cudgel; I never had a smile
  • for his raillery, never a moment for his society; his invitations to
  • take coffee with him in his parlour were invariably rejected, and
  • very stiffly and sternly rejected too; his jesting allusions to the
  • directress (which he still continued) were heard with a grim calm very
  • different from the petulant pleasure they were formerly wont to excite.
  • For a long time Pelet bore with my frigid demeanour very patiently;
  • he even increased his attentions; but finding that even a cringing
  • politeness failed to thaw or move me, he at last altered too; in
  • his turn he cooled; his invitations ceased; his countenance became
  • suspicious and overcast, and I read in the perplexed yet brooding aspect
  • of his brow, a constant examination and comparison of premises, and an
  • anxious endeavour to draw thence some explanatory inference. Ere long,
  • I fancy, he succeeded, for he was not without penetration; perhaps, too,
  • Mdlle. Zoraide might have aided him in the solution of the enigma; at
  • any rate I soon found that the uncertainty of doubt had vanished from
  • his manner; renouncing all pretence of friendship and cordiality, he
  • adopted a reserved, formal, but still scrupulously polite deportment.
  • This was the point to which I had wished to bring him, and I was now
  • again comparatively at my ease. I did not, it is true, like my position
  • in his house; but being freed from the annoyance of false professions
  • and double-dealing I could endure it, especially as no heroic sentiment
  • of hatred or jealousy of the director distracted my philosophical soul;
  • he had not, I found, wounded me in a very tender point, the wound was so
  • soon and so radically healed, leaving only a sense of contempt for
  • the treacherous fashion in which it had been inflicted, and a lasting
  • mistrust of the hand which I had detected attempting to stab in the
  • dark.
  • This state of things continued till about the middle of July, and then
  • there was a little change; Pelet came home one night, an hour after his
  • usual time, in a state of unequivocal intoxication, a thing anomalous
  • with him; for if he had some of the worst faults of his countrymen,
  • he had also one at least of their virtues, i.e. sobriety. So drunk,
  • however, was he upon this occasion, that after having roused the whole
  • establishment (except the pupils, whose dormitory being over the classes
  • in a building apart from the dwelling-house, was consequently out of the
  • reach of disturbance) by violently ringing the hall-bell and ordering
  • lunch to be brought in immediately, for he imagined it was noon, whereas
  • the city bells had just tolled midnight; after having furiously rated
  • the servants for their want of punctuality, and gone near to chastise
  • his poor old mother, who advised him to go to bed, he began raving
  • dreadfully about “le maudit Anglais, Creemsvort.” I had not yet retired;
  • some German books I had got hold of had kept me up late; I heard the
  • uproar below, and could distinguish the director’s voice exalted in
  • a manner as appalling as it was unusual. Opening my door a little, I
  • became aware of a demand on his part for “Creemsvort” to be brought
  • down to him that he might cut his throat on the hall-table and wash
  • his honour, which he affirmed to be in a dirty condition, in infernal
  • British blood. “He is either mad or drunk,” thought I, “and in either
  • case the old woman and the servants will be the better of a man’s
  • assistance,” so I descended straight to the hall. I found him staggering
  • about, his eyes in a fine frenzy rolling--a pretty sight he was, a just
  • medium between the fool and the lunatic.
  • “Come, M. Pelet,” said I, “you had better go to bed,” and I took hold of
  • his arm. His excitement, of course, increased greatly at sight and touch
  • of the individual for whose blood he had been making application: he
  • struggled and struck with fury--but a drunken man is no match for a
  • sober one; and, even in his normal state, Pelet’s worn out frame could
  • not have stood against my sound one. I got him up-stairs, and, in
  • process of time, to bed. During the operation he did not fail to
  • utter comminations which, though broken, had a sense in them; while
  • stigmatizing me as the treacherous spawn of a perfidious country, he,
  • in the same breath, anathematized Zoraide Reuter; he termed her “femme
  • sotte et vicieuse,” who, in a fit of lewd caprice, had thrown herself
  • away on an unprincipled adventurer; directing the point of the last
  • appellation by a furious blow, obliquely aimed at me. I left him in the
  • act of bounding elastically out of the bed into which I had tucked him;
  • but, as I took the precaution of turning the key in the door behind me,
  • I retired to my own room, assured of his safe custody till the morning,
  • and free to draw undisturbed conclusions from the scene I had just
  • witnessed.
  • Now, it was precisely about this time that the directress, stung by
  • my coldness, bewitched by my scorn, and excited by the preference she
  • suspected me of cherishing for another, had fallen into a snare of her
  • own laying--was herself caught in the meshes of the very passion with
  • which she wished to entangle me. Conscious of the state of things in
  • that quarter, I gathered, from the condition in which I saw my
  • employer, that his lady-love had betrayed the alienation of her
  • affections--inclinations, rather, I would say; affection is a word at
  • once too warm and too pure for the subject--had let him see that the
  • cavity of her hollow heart, emptied of his image, was now occupied by
  • that of his usher. It was not without some surprise that I found
  • myself obliged to entertain this view of the case; Pelet, with
  • his old-established school, was so convenient, so profitable a
  • match--Zoraide was so calculating, so interested a woman--I wondered
  • mere personal preference could, in her mind, have prevailed for a moment
  • over worldly advantage: yet, it was evident, from what Pelet said, that,
  • not only had she repulsed him, but had even let slip expressions of
  • partiality for me. One of his drunken exclamations was, “And the
  • jade doats on your youth, you raw blockhead! and talks of your noble
  • deportment, as she calls your accursed English formality--and your pure
  • morals, forsooth! des moeurs de Caton a-t-elle dit--sotte!” Hers, I
  • thought, must be a curious soul, where in spite of a strong, natural
  • tendency to estimate unduly advantages of wealth and station, the
  • sardonic disdain of a fortuneless subordinate had wrought a deeper
  • impression than could be imprinted by the most flattering assiduities of
  • a prosperous CHEF D’INSTITUTION. I smiled inwardly; and strange to say,
  • though my AMOUR PROPRE was excited not disagreeably by the conquest, my
  • better feelings remained untouched. Next day, when I saw the directress,
  • and when she made an excuse to meet me in the corridor, and besought my
  • notice by a demeanour and look subdued to Helot humility, I could
  • not love, I could scarcely pity her. To answer briefly and dryly
  • some interesting inquiry about my health--to pass her by with a stern
  • bow--was all I could; her presence and manner had then, and for some
  • time previously and consequently, a singular effect upon me: they
  • sealed up all that was good, elicited all that was noxious in my nature;
  • sometimes they enervated my senses, but they always hardened my heart.
  • I was aware of the detriment done, and quarrelled with myself for the
  • change. I had ever hated a tyrant; and, behold, the possession of a
  • slave, self-given, went near to transform me into what I abhorred!
  • There was at once a sort of low gratification in receiving this luscious
  • incense from an attractive and still young worshipper; and an irritating
  • sense of degradation in the very experience of the pleasure. When she
  • stole about me with the soft step of a slave, I felt at once barbarous
  • and sensual as a pasha. I endured her homage sometimes; sometimes I
  • rebuked it. My indifference or harshness served equally to increase the
  • evil I desired to check.
  • “Que le dedain lui sied bien!” I once overheard her say to her mother:
  • “il est beau comme Apollon quand il sourit de son air hautain.”
  • And the jolly old dame laughed, and said she thought her daughter was
  • bewitched, for I had no point of a handsome man about me, except being
  • straight and without deformity. “Pour moi,” she continued, “il me fait
  • tout l’effet d’un chat-huant, avec ses besicles.”
  • Worthy old girl! I could have gone and kissed her had she not been a
  • little too old, too fat, and too red-faced; her sensible, truthful
  • words seemed so wholesome, contrasted with the morbid illusions of her
  • daughter.
  • When Pelet awoke on the morning after his frenzy fit, he retained no
  • recollection of what had happened the previous night, and his mother
  • fortunately had the discretion to refrain from informing him that I had
  • been a witness of his degradation. He did not again have recourse to
  • wine for curing his griefs, but even in his sober mood he soon showed
  • that the iron of jealousy had entered into his soul. A thorough
  • Frenchman, the national characteristic of ferocity had not been omitted
  • by nature in compounding the ingredients of his character; it had
  • appeared first in his access of drunken wrath, when some of his
  • demonstrations of hatred to my person were of a truly fiendish
  • character, and now it was more covertly betrayed by momentary
  • contractions of the features, and flashes of fierceness in his light
  • blue eyes, when their glance chanced to encounter mine. He absolutely
  • avoided speaking to me; I was now spared even the falsehood of his
  • politeness. In this state of our mutual relations, my soul rebelled
  • sometimes almost ungovernably, against living in the house and
  • discharging the service of such a man; but who is free from the
  • constraint of circumstances? At that time, I was not: I used to rise
  • each morning eager to shake off his yoke, and go out with my portmanteau
  • under my arm, if a beggar, at least a freeman; and in the evening, when
  • I came back from the pensionnat de demoiselles, a certain pleasant voice
  • in my ear; a certain face, so intelligent, yet so docile, so reflective,
  • yet so soft, in my eyes; a certain cast of character, at once proud
  • and pliant, sensitive and sagacious, serious and ardent, in my head; a
  • certain tone of feeling, fervid and modest, refined and practical, pure
  • and powerful, delighting and troubling my memory--visions of new ties I
  • longed to contract, of new duties I longed to undertake, had taken the
  • rover and the rebel out of me, and had shown endurance of my hated lot
  • in the light of a Spartan virtue.
  • But Pelet’s fury subsided; a fortnight sufficed for its rise, progress,
  • and extinction: in that space of time the dismissal of the obnoxious
  • teacher had been effected in the neighbouring house, and in the same
  • interval I had declared my resolution to follow and find out my pupil,
  • and upon my application for her address being refused, I had summarily
  • resigned my own post. This last act seemed at once to restore Mdlle.
  • Reuter to her senses; her sagacity, her judgment, so long misled by a
  • fascinating delusion, struck again into the right track the moment
  • that delusion vanished. By the right track, I do not mean the steep and
  • difficult path of principle--in that path she never trod; but the plain
  • highway of common sense, from which she had of late widely diverged.
  • When there she carefully sought, and having found, industriously pursued
  • the trail of her old suitor, M. Pelet. She soon overtook him. What arts
  • she employed to soothe and blind him I know not, but she succeeded both
  • in allaying his wrath, and hoodwinking his discernment, as was soon
  • proved by the alteration in his mien and manner; she must have managed
  • to convince him that I neither was, nor ever had been, a rival of his,
  • for the fortnight of fury against me terminated in a fit of exceeding
  • graciousness and amenity, not unmixed with a dash of exulting
  • self-complacency, more ludicrous than irritating. Pelet’s bachelor’s
  • life had been passed in proper French style with due disregard to moral
  • restraint, and I thought his married life promised to be very French
  • also. He often boasted to me what a terror he had been to certain
  • husbands of his acquaintance; I perceived it would not now be difficult
  • to pay him back in his own coin.
  • The crisis drew on. No sooner had the holidays commenced than note of
  • preparation for some momentous event sounded all through the premises
  • of Pelet: painters, polishers, and upholsterers were immediately set
  • to work, and there was talk of “la chambre de Madame,” “le salon de
  • Madame.” Not deeming it probable that the old duenna at present graced
  • with that title in our house, had inspired her son with such enthusiasm
  • of filial piety, as to induce him to fit up apartments expressly for her
  • use, I concluded, in common with the cook, the two housemaids, and the
  • kitchen-scullion, that a new and more juvenile Madame was destined to be
  • the tenant of these gay chambers.
  • Presently official announcement of the coming event was put forth. In
  • another week’s time M. Francois Pelet, directeur, and Mdlle. Zoraide
  • Reuter, directrice, were to be joined together in the bands of
  • matrimony. Monsieur, in person, heralded the fact to me; terminating
  • his communication by an obliging expression of his desire that I should
  • continue, as heretofore, his ablest assistant and most trusted friend;
  • and a proposition to raise my salary by an additional two hundred francs
  • per annum. I thanked him, gave no conclusive answer at the time, and,
  • when he had left me, threw off my blouse, put on my coat, and set out
  • on a long walk outside the Porte de Flandre, in order, as I thought, to
  • cool my blood, calm my nerves, and shake my disarranged ideas into some
  • order. In fact, I had just received what was virtually my dismissal.
  • I could not conceal, I did not desire to conceal from myself the
  • conviction that, being now certain that Mdlle. Reuter was destined to
  • become Madame Pelet it would not do for me to remain a dependent dweller
  • in the house which was soon to be hers. Her present demeanour towards
  • me was deficient neither in dignity nor propriety; but I knew her former
  • feeling was unchanged. Decorum now repressed, and Policy masked it, but
  • Opportunity would be too strong for either of these--Temptation would
  • shiver their restraints.
  • I was no pope--I could not boast infallibility: in short, if I stayed,
  • the probability was that, in three months’ time, a practical modern
  • French novel would be in full process of concoction under the roof of
  • the unsuspecting Pelet. Now, modern French novels are not to my
  • taste, either practically or theoretically. Limited as had yet been my
  • experience of life, I had once had the opportunity of contemplating,
  • near at hand, an example of the results produced by a course of
  • interesting and romantic domestic treachery. No golden halo of fiction
  • was about this example, I saw it bare and real, and it was very
  • loathsome. I saw a mind degraded by the practice of mean subterfuge, by
  • the habit of perfidious deception, and a body depraved by the infectious
  • influence of the vice-polluted soul. I had suffered much from the forced
  • and prolonged view of this spectacle; those sufferings I did not now
  • regret, for their simple recollection acted as a most wholesome antidote
  • to temptation. They had inscribed on my reason the conviction that
  • unlawful pleasure, trenching on another’s rights, is delusive and
  • envenomed pleasure--its hollowness disappoints at the time, its poison
  • cruelly tortures afterwards, its effects deprave for ever.
  • From all this resulted the conclusion that I must leave Pelet’s, and
  • that instantly; “but,” said Prudence, “you know not where to go, nor how
  • to live;” and then the dream of true love came over me: Frances Henri
  • seemed to stand at my side; her slender waist to invite my arm; her
  • hand to court my hand; I felt it was made to nestle in mine; I could not
  • relinquish my right to it, nor could I withdraw my eyes for ever from
  • hers, where I saw so much happiness, such a correspondence of heart with
  • heart; over whose expression I had such influence; where I could kindle
  • bliss, infuse awe, stir deep delight, rouse sparkling spirit, and
  • sometimes waken pleasurable dread. My hopes to will and possess, my
  • resolutions to merit and rise, rose in array against me; and here I was
  • about to plunge into the gulf of absolute destitution; “and all this,”
  • suggested an inward voice, “because you fear an evil which may never
  • happen!” “It will happen; you KNOW it will,” answered that stubborn
  • monitor, Conscience. “Do what you feel is right; obey me, and even in
  • the sloughs of want I will plant for you firm footing.” And then, as I
  • walked fast along the road, there rose upon me a strange, inly-felt idea
  • of some Great Being, unseen, but all present, who in His beneficence
  • desired only my welfare, and now watched the struggle of good and evil
  • in my heart, and waited to see whether I should obey His voice, heard in
  • the whispers of my conscience, or lend an ear to the sophisms by which
  • His enemy and mine--the Spirit of Evil--sought to lead me astray.
  • Rough and steep was the path indicated by divine suggestion; mossy and
  • declining the green way along which Temptation strewed flowers; but
  • whereas, methought, the Deity of Love, the Friend of all that exists,
  • would smile well-pleased were I to gird up my loins and address myself
  • to the rude ascent; so, on the other hand, each inclination to the
  • velvet declivity seemed to kindle a gleam of triumph on the brow of the
  • man-hating, God-defying demon. Sharp and short I turned round; fast I
  • retraced my steps; in half an hour I was again at M. Pelet’s: I sought
  • him in his study; brief parley, concise explanation sufficed; my manner
  • proved that I was resolved; he, perhaps, at heart approved my
  • decision. After twenty minutes’ conversation, I re-entered my own room,
  • self-deprived of the means of living, self-sentenced to leave my present
  • home, with the short notice of a week in which to provide another.
  • CHAPTER XXI.
  • DIRECTLY as I closed the door, I saw laid on the table two letters; my
  • thought was, that they were notes of invitation from the friends of some
  • of my pupils; I had received such marks of attention occasionally, and
  • with me, who had no friends, correspondence of more interest was out
  • of the question; the postman’s arrival had never yet been an event of
  • interest to me since I came to Brussels. I laid my hand carelessly on
  • the documents, and coldly and slowly glancing at them, I prepared to
  • break the seals; my eye was arrested and my hand too; I saw what excited
  • me, as if I had found a vivid picture where I expected only to discover
  • a blank page: on one cover was an English postmark; on the other, a
  • lady’s clear, fine autograph; the last I opened first:--
  • “MONSIEUR,
  • “I FOUND out what you had done the very morning after your visit to me;
  • you might be sure I should dust the china, every day; and, as no one but
  • you had been in my room for a week, and as fairy-money is not current
  • in Brussels, I could not doubt who left the twenty francs on the
  • chimney-piece. I thought I heard you stir the vase when I was stooping
  • to look for your glove under the table, and I wondered you should
  • imagine it had got into such a little cup. Now, monsieur, the money
  • is not mine, and I shall not keep it; I will not send it in this note
  • because it might be lost--besides, it is heavy; but I will restore it
  • to you the first time I see you, and you must make no difficulties about
  • taking it; because, in the first place, I am sure, monsieur, you can
  • understand that one likes to pay one’s debts; that it is satisfactory
  • to owe no man anything; and, in the second place, I can now very well
  • afford to be honest, as I am provided with a situation. This last
  • circumstance is, indeed, the reason of my writing to you, for it is
  • pleasant to communicate good news; and, in these days, I have only my
  • master to whom I can tell anything.
  • “A week ago, monsieur, I was sent for by a Mrs. Wharton, an English
  • lady; her eldest daughter was going to be married, and some rich
  • relation having made her a present of a veil and dress in costly old
  • lace, as precious, they said, almost as jewels, but a little damaged by
  • time, I was commissioned to put them in repair. I had to do it at the
  • house; they gave me, besides, some embroidery to complete, and nearly
  • a week elapsed before I had finished everything. While I worked, Miss
  • Wharton often came into the room and sat with me, and so did Mrs.
  • Wharton; they made me talk English; asked how I had learned to speak it
  • so well; then they inquired what I knew besides--what books I had read;
  • soon they seemed to make a sort of wonder of me, considering me no doubt
  • as a learned grisette. One afternoon, Mrs. Wharton brought in a Parisian
  • lady to test the accuracy of my knowledge of French; the result of
  • it was that, owing probably in a great degree to the mother’s and
  • daughter’s good humour about the marriage, which inclined them to
  • do beneficent deeds, and partly, I think, because they are naturally
  • benevolent people, they decided that the wish I had expressed to do
  • something more than mend lace was a very legitimate one; and the same
  • day they took me in their carriage to Mrs. D.’s, who is the directress
  • of the first English school at Brussels. It seems she happened to be in
  • want of a French lady to give lessons in geography, history, grammar,
  • and composition, in the French language. Mrs. Wharton recommended me
  • very warmly; and, as two of her younger daughters are pupils in the
  • house, her patronage availed to get me the place. It was settled that I
  • am to attend six hours daily (for, happily, it was not required that
  • I should live in the house; I should have been sorry to leave my
  • lodgings), and, for this, Mrs. D. will give me twelve hundred francs per
  • annum.
  • “You see, therefore, monsieur, that I am now rich; richer almost than
  • I ever hoped to be: I feel thankful for it, especially as my sight was
  • beginning to be injured by constant working at fine lace; and I was
  • getting, too, very weary of sitting up late at nights, and yet not being
  • able to find time for reading or study. I began to fear that I should
  • fall ill, and be unable to pay my way; this fear is now, in a great
  • measure, removed; and, in truth, monsieur, I am very grateful to God for
  • the relief; and I feel it necessary, almost, to speak of my happiness
  • to some one who is kind-hearted enough to derive joy from seeing others
  • joyful. I could not, therefore, resist the temptation of writing to you;
  • I argued with myself it is very pleasant for me to write, and it will
  • not be exactly painful, though it may be tiresome to monsieur to
  • read. Do not be too angry with my circumlocution and inelegancies of
  • expression, and, believe me
  • “Your attached pupil,
  • “F. E. HENRI.”
  • Having read this letter, I mused on its contents for a few
  • moments--whether with sentiments pleasurable or otherwise I will
  • hereafter note--and then took up the other. It was directed in a hand
  • to me unknown--small, and rather neat; neither masculine nor exactly
  • feminine; the seal bore a coat of arms, concerning which I could only
  • decipher that it was not that of the Seacombe family, consequently the
  • epistle could be from none of my almost forgotten, and certainly quite
  • forgetting patrician relations. From whom, then, was it? I removed the
  • envelope; the note folded within ran as follows:
  • “I have no doubt in the world that you are doing well in that greasy
  • Flanders; living probably on the fat of the unctuous land; sitting like
  • a black-haired, tawny-skinned, long-nosed Israelite by the flesh-pots
  • of Egypt; or like a rascally son of Levi near the brass cauldrons of the
  • sanctuary, and every now and then plunging in a consecrated hook, and
  • drawing out of the sea of broth the fattest of heave-shoulders and the
  • fleshiest of wave-breasts. I know this, because you never write to any
  • one in England. Thankless dog that you are! I, by the sovereign efficacy
  • of my recommendation, got you the place where you are now living in
  • clover, and yet not a word of gratitude, or even acknowledgment, have
  • you ever offered in return; but I am coming to see you, and small
  • conception can you, with your addled aristocratic brains, form of the
  • sort of moral kicking I have, ready packed in my carpet-bag, destined to
  • be presented to you immediately on my arrival.
  • “Meantime I know all about your affairs, and have just got information,
  • by Brown’s last letter, that you are said to be on the point of forming
  • an advantageous match with a pursy, little Belgian schoolmistress--a
  • Mdlle. Zenobie, or some such name. Won’t I have a look at her when I
  • come over! And this you may rely on: if she pleases my taste, or if I
  • think it worth while in a pecuniary point of view, I’ll pounce on your
  • prize and bear her away triumphant in spite of your teeth. Yet I don’t
  • like dumpies either, and Brown says she is little and stout--the better
  • fitted for a wiry, starved-looking chap like you. “Be on the look-out,
  • for you know neither the day nor hour when your ----” (I don’t wish to
  • blaspheme, so I’ll leave a blank)--cometh.
  • “Yours truly,
  • “HUNSDEN YORKE HUNSDEN.”
  • “Humph!” said I; and ere I laid the letter down, I again glanced at the
  • small, neat handwriting, not a bit like that of a mercantile man, nor,
  • indeed, of any man except Hunsden himself. They talk of affinities
  • between the autograph and the character: what affinity was there here?
  • I recalled the writer’s peculiar face and certain traits I suspected,
  • rather than knew, to appertain to his nature, and I answered, “A great
  • deal.”
  • Hunsden, then, was coming to Brussels, and coming I knew not when;
  • coming charged with the expectation of finding me on the summit of
  • prosperity, about to be married, to step into a warm nest, to lie
  • comfortably down by the side of a snug, well-fed little mate.
  • “I wish him joy of the fidelity of the picture he has painted,” thought
  • I. “What will he say when, instead of a pair of plump turtle doves,
  • billing and cooing in a bower of roses, he finds a single lean
  • cormorant, standing mateless and shelterless on poverty’s bleak cliff?
  • Oh, confound him! Let him come, and let him laugh at the contrast
  • between rumour and fact. Were he the devil himself, instead of being
  • merely very like him, I’d not condescend to get out of his way, or to
  • forge a smile or a cheerful word wherewith to avert his sarcasm.”
  • Then I recurred to the other letter: that struck a chord whose sound I
  • could not deaden by thrusting my fingers into my ears, for it vibrated
  • within; and though its swell might be exquisite music, its cadence was a
  • groan.
  • That Frances was relieved from the pressure of want, that the curse of
  • excessive labour was taken off her, filled me with happiness; that her
  • first thought in prosperity should be to augment her joy by sharing
  • it with me, met and satisfied the wish of my heart. Two results of her
  • letter were then pleasant, sweet as two draughts of nectar; but applying
  • my lips for the third time to the cup, and they were excoriated as with
  • vinegar and gall.
  • Two persons whose desires are moderate may live well enough in Brussels
  • on an income which would scarcely afford a respectable maintenance for
  • one in London: and that, not because the necessaries of life are so
  • much dearer in the latter capital, or taxes so much higher than in the
  • former, but because the English surpass in folly all the nations on
  • God’s earth, and are more abject slaves to custom, to opinion, to
  • the desire to keep up a certain appearance, than the Italians are to
  • priestcraft, the French to vain-glory, the Russians to their Czar, or
  • the Germans to black beer. I have seen a degree of sense in the modest
  • arrangement of one homely Belgian household, that might put to shame the
  • elegance, the superfluities, the luxuries, the strained refinements of
  • a hundred genteel English mansions. In Belgium, provided you can
  • make money, you may save it; this is scarcely possible in England;
  • ostentation there lavishes in a month what industry has earned in a
  • year. More shame to all classes in that most bountiful and beggarly
  • country for their servile following of Fashion; I could write a chapter
  • or two on this subject, but must forbear, at least for the present. Had
  • I retained my 60l. per annum I could, now that Frances was in possession
  • of 50l., have gone straight to her this very evening, and spoken out the
  • words which, repressed, kept fretting my heart with fever; our united
  • income would, as we should have managed it, have sufficed well for
  • our mutual support; since we lived in a country where economy was not
  • confounded with meanness, where frugality in dress, food, and furniture,
  • was not synonymous with vulgarity in these various points. But the
  • placeless usher, bare of resource, and unsupported by connections, must
  • not think of this; such a sentiment as love, such a word as marriage,
  • were misplaced in his heart, and on his lips. Now for the first time did
  • I truly feel what it was to be poor; now did the sacrifice I had made
  • in casting from me the means of living put on a new aspect; instead of
  • a correct, just, honourable act, it seemed a deed at once light and
  • fanatical; I took several turns in my room, under the goading influence
  • of most poignant remorse; I walked a quarter of an hour from the wall to
  • the window; and at the window, self-reproach seemed to face me; at the
  • wall, self-disdain: all at once out spoke Conscience:--
  • “Down, stupid tormenters!” cried she; “the man has done his duty;
  • you shall not bait him thus by thoughts of what might have been; he
  • relinquished a temporary and contingent good to avoid a permanent and
  • certain evil he did well. Let him reflect now, and when your blinding
  • dust and deafening hum subside, he will discover a path.”
  • I sat down; I propped my forehead on both my hands; I thought and
  • thought an hour--two hours; vainly. I seemed like one sealed in a
  • subterranean vault, who gazes at utter blackness; at blackness ensured
  • by yard-thick stone walls around, and by piles of building above,
  • expecting light to penetrate through granite, and through cement firm
  • as granite. But there are chinks, or there may be chinks, in the
  • best adjusted masonry; there was a chink in my cavernous cell; for,
  • eventually, I saw, or seemed to see, a ray--pallid, indeed, and cold,
  • and doubtful, but still a ray, for it showed that narrow path which
  • conscience had promised after two, three hours’ torturing research in
  • brain and memory, I disinterred certain remains of circumstances, and
  • conceived a hope that by putting them together an expedient might be
  • framed, and a resource discovered. The circumstances were briefly these:
  • Some three months ago M. Pelet had, on the occasion of his fete, given
  • the boys a treat, which treat consisted in a party of pleasure to a
  • certain place of public resort in the outskirts of Brussels, of which
  • I do not at this moment remember the name, but near it were several of
  • those lakelets called etangs; and there was one etang, larger than the
  • rest, where on holidays people were accustomed to amuse themselves by
  • rowing round it in little boats. The boys having eaten an unlimited
  • quantity of “gaufres,” and drank several bottles of Louvain beer, amid
  • the shades of a garden made and provided for such crams, petitioned
  • the director for leave to take a row on the etang. Half a dozen of the
  • eldest succeeded in obtaining leave, and I was commissioned to accompany
  • them as surveillant. Among the half dozen happened to be a certain Jean
  • Baptiste Vandenhuten, a most ponderous young Flamand, not tall, but
  • even now, at the early age of sixteen, possessing a breadth and depth of
  • personal development truly national. It chanced that Jean was the first
  • lad to step into the boat; he stumbled, rolled to one side, the boat
  • revolted at his weight and capsized. Vandenhuten sank like lead, rose,
  • sank again. My coat and waistcoat were off in an instant; I had not been
  • brought up at Eton and boated and bathed and swam there ten long years
  • for nothing; it was a natural and easy act for me to leap to the rescue.
  • The lads and the boatmen yelled; they thought there would be two deaths
  • by drowning instead of one; but as Jean rose the third time, I clutched
  • him by one leg and the collar, and in three minutes more both he and I
  • were safe landed. To speak heaven’s truth, my merit in the action was
  • small indeed, for I had run no risk, and subsequently did not even catch
  • cold from the wetting; but when M. and Madame Vandenhuten, of whom Jean
  • Baptiste was the sole hope, came to hear of the exploit, they seemed
  • to think I had evinced a bravery and devotion which no thanks could
  • sufficiently repay. Madame, in particular, was “certain I must have
  • dearly loved their sweet son, or I would not thus have hazarded my own
  • life to save his.” Monsieur, an honest-looking, though phlegmatic man,
  • said very little, but he would not suffer me to leave the room, till
  • I had promised that in case I ever stood in need of help I would, by
  • applying to him, give him a chance of discharging the obligation under
  • which he affirmed I had laid him. These words, then, were my glimmer of
  • light; it was here I found my sole outlet; and in truth, though the cold
  • light roused, it did not cheer me; nor did the outlet seem such as I
  • should like to pass through. Right I had none to M. Vandenhuten’s good
  • offices; it was not on the ground of merit I could apply to him; no, I
  • must stand on that of necessity: I had no work; I wanted work; my best
  • chance of obtaining it lay in securing his recommendation. This I knew
  • could be had by asking for it; not to ask, because the request revolted
  • my pride and contradicted my habits, would, I felt, be an indulgence of
  • false and indolent fastidiousness. I might repent the omission all my
  • life; I would not then be guilty of it.
  • That evening I went to M. Vandenhuten’s; but I had bent the bow and
  • adjusted the shaft in vain; the string broke. I rang the bell at the
  • great door (it was a large, handsome house in an expensive part of the
  • town); a manservant opened; I asked for M. Vandenhuten; M. Vandenhuten
  • and family were all out of town--gone to Ostend--did not know when they
  • would be back. I left my card, and retraced my steps.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • A WEEK is gone; LE JOUR DES NOCES arrived; the marriage was solemnized
  • at St. Jacques; Mdlle. Zoraide became Madame Pelet, NEE Reuter; and, in
  • about an hour after this transformation, “the happy pair,” as newspapers
  • phrase it, were on their way to Paris; where, according to previous
  • arrangement, the honeymoon was to be spent. The next day I quitted the
  • pensionnat. Myself and my chattels (some books and clothes) were soon
  • transferred to a modest lodging I had hired in a street not far off. In
  • half an hour my clothes were arranged in a commode, my books on a shelf,
  • and the “flitting” was effected. I should not have been unhappy that day
  • had not one pang tortured me--a longing to go to the Rue Notre Dame
  • aux Neiges, resisted, yet irritated by an inward resolve to avoid
  • that street till such time as the mist of doubt should clear from my
  • prospects.
  • It was a sweet September evening--very mild, very still; I had nothing
  • to do; at that hour I knew Frances would be equally released from
  • occupation; I thought she might possibly be wishing for her master, I
  • knew I wished for my pupil. Imagination began with her low whispers,
  • infusing into my soul the soft tale of pleasures that might be.
  • “You will find her reading or writing,” said she; “you can take your
  • seat at her side; you need not startle her peace by undue excitement;
  • you need not embarrass her manner by unusual action or language. Be as
  • you always are; look over what she has written; listen while she reads;
  • chide her, or quietly approve; you know the effect of either system; you
  • know her smile when pleased, you know the play of her looks when roused;
  • you have the secret of awakening what expression you will, and you can
  • choose amongst that pleasant variety. With you she will sit silent as
  • long as it suits you to talk alone; you can hold her under a potent
  • spell: intelligent as she is, eloquent as she can be, you can seal her
  • lips, and veil her bright countenance with diffidence; yet, you know,
  • she is not all monotonous mildness; you have seen, with a sort of
  • strange pleasure, revolt, scorn, austerity, bitterness, lay energetic
  • claim to a place in her feelings and physiognomy; you know that few
  • could rule her as you do; you know she might break, but never bend under
  • the hand of Tyranny and Injustice, but Reason and Affection can guide
  • her by a sign. Try their influence now. Go--they are not passions; you
  • may handle them safely.”
  • “I will NOT go was my answer to the sweet temptress. A man is master
  • of himself to a certain point, but not beyond it. Could I seek Frances
  • to-night, could I sit with her alone in a quiet room, and address her
  • only in the language of Reason and Affection?”
  • “No,” was the brief, fervent reply of that Love which had conquered and
  • now controlled me.
  • Time seemed to stagnate; the sun would not go down; my watch ticked, but
  • I thought the hands were paralyzed.
  • “What a hot evening!” I cried, throwing open the lattice; for, indeed, I
  • had seldom felt so feverish. Hearing a step ascending the common stair,
  • I wondered whether the “locataire,” now mounting to his apartments, were
  • as unsettled in mind and condition as I was, or whether he lived in the
  • calm of certain resources, and in the freedom of unfettered feelings.
  • What! was he coming in person to solve the problem hardly proposed in
  • inaudible thought? He had actually knocked at the door--at MY door; a
  • smart, prompt rap; and, almost before I could invite him in, he was over
  • the threshold, and had closed the door behind him.
  • “And how are you?” asked an indifferent, quiet voice, in the English
  • language; while my visitor, without any sort of bustle or introduction,
  • put his hat on the table, and his gloves into his hat, and drawing
  • the only armchair the room afforded a little forward, seated himself
  • tranquilly therein.
  • “Can’t you speak?” he inquired in a few moments, in a tone whose
  • nonchalance seemed to intimate that it was much the same thing whether
  • I answered or not. The fact is, I found it desirable to have recourse to
  • my good friends “les besicles;” not exactly to ascertain the identity of
  • my visitor--for I already knew him, confound his impudence! but to see
  • how he looked--to get a clear notion of his mien and countenance.
  • I wiped the glasses very deliberately, and put them on quite as
  • deliberately; adjusting them so as not to hurt the bridge of my nose
  • or get entangled in my short tufts of dun hair. I was sitting in the
  • window-seat, with my back to the light, and I had him VIS-A-VIS; a
  • position he would much rather have had reversed; for, at any time, he
  • preferred scrutinizing to being scrutinized. Yes, it was HE, and no
  • mistake, with his six feet of length arranged in a sitting attitude;
  • with his dark travelling surtout with its velvet collar, his gray
  • pantaloons, his black stock, and his face, the most original one Nature
  • ever modelled, yet the least obtrusively so; not one feature that could
  • be termed marked or odd, yet the effect of the whole unique. There is no
  • use in attempting to describe what is indescribable. Being in no hurry
  • to address him, I sat and stared at my ease.
  • “Oh, that’s your game--is it?” said he at last. “Well, we’ll see which
  • is soonest tired.” And he slowly drew out a fine cigar-case, picked one
  • to his taste, lit it, took a book from the shelf convenient to his hand,
  • then leaning back, proceeded to smoke and read as tranquilly as if he
  • had been in his own room, in Grove-street, X---shire, England. I knew
  • he was capable of continuing in that attitude till midnight, if he
  • conceived the whim, so I rose, and taking the book from his hand, I
  • said,--
  • “You did not ask for it, and you shall not have it.”
  • “It is silly and dull,” he observed, “so I have not lost much;” then the
  • spell being broken, he went on: “I thought you lived at Pelet’s; I went
  • there this afternoon expecting to be starved to death by sitting in
  • a boarding-school drawing-room, and they told me you were gone, had
  • departed this morning; you had left your address behind you though,
  • which I wondered at; it was a more practical and sensible precaution
  • than I should have imagined you capable of. Why did you leave?”
  • “Because M. Pelet has just married the lady whom you and Mr. Brown
  • assigned to me as my wife.”
  • “Oh, indeed!” replied Hunsden with a short laugh; “so you’ve lost both
  • your wife and your place?”
  • “Precisely so.”
  • I saw him give a quick, covert glance all round my room; he marked its
  • narrow limits, its scanty furniture: in an instant he had comprehended
  • the state of matters--had absolved me from the crime of prosperity. A
  • curious effect this discovery wrought in his strange mind; I am morally
  • certain that if he had found me installed in a handsome parlour,
  • lounging on a soft couch, with a pretty, wealthy wife at my side, he
  • would have hated me; a brief, cold, haughty visit, would in such a case
  • have been the extreme limit of his civilities, and never would he have
  • come near me more, so long as the tide of fortune bore me smoothly on
  • its surface; but the painted furniture, the bare walls, the cheerless
  • solitude of my room relaxed his rigid pride, and I know not what
  • softening change had taken place both in his voice and look ere he spoke
  • again.
  • “You have got another place?”
  • “No.”
  • “You are in the way of getting one?”
  • “No.”
  • “That is bad; have you applied to Brown?”
  • “No, indeed.”
  • “You had better; he often has it in his power to give useful information
  • in such matters.”
  • “He served me once very well; I have no claim on him, and am not in the
  • humour to bother him again.”
  • “Oh, if you’re bashful, and dread being intrusive, you need only
  • commission me. I shall see him to-night; I can put in a word.”
  • “I beg you will not, Mr. Hunsden; I am in your debt already; you did me
  • an important service when I was at X----; got me out of a den where I
  • was dying: that service I have never repaid, and at present I decline
  • positively adding another item to the account.”
  • “If the wind sits that way, I’m satisfied. I thought my unexampled
  • generosity in turning you out of that accursed counting-house would be
  • duly appreciated some day: ‘Cast your bread on the waters, and it
  • shall be found after many days,’ say the Scriptures. Yes, that’s right,
  • lad--make much of me--I’m a nonpareil: there’s nothing like me in the
  • common herd. In the meantime, to put all humbug aside and talk sense for
  • a few moments, you would be greatly the better of a situation, and what
  • is more, you are a fool if you refuse to take one from any hand that
  • offers it.”
  • “Very well, Mr. Hunsden; now you have settled that point, talk of
  • something else. What news from X----?”
  • “I have not settled that point, or at least there is another to settle
  • before we get to X----. Is this Miss Zenobie” (Zoraide, interposed
  • I)--“well, Zoraide--is she really married to Pelet?”
  • “I tell you yes--and if you don’t believe me, go and ask the cure of St.
  • Jacques.”
  • “And your heart is broken?”
  • “I am not aware that it is; it feels all right--beats as usual.”
  • “Then your feelings are less superfine than I took them to be; you must
  • be a coarse, callous character, to bear such a thwack without staggering
  • under it.”
  • “Staggering under it? What the deuce is there to stagger under in the
  • circumstance of a Belgian schoolmistress marrying a French schoolmaster?
  • The progeny will doubtless be a strange hybrid race; but that’s their
  • look-out--not mine.”
  • “He indulges in scurrilous jests, and the bride was his affianced one!”
  • “Who said so?”
  • “Brown.”
  • “I’ll tell you what, Hunsden--Brown is an old gossip.”
  • “He is; but in the meantime, if his gossip be founded on less than
  • fact--if you took no particular interest in Miss Zoraide--why, O
  • youthful pedagogue! did you leave your place in consequence of her
  • becoming Madame Pelet?”
  • “Because--” I felt my face grow a little hot; “because--in short, Mr.
  • Hunsden, I decline answering any more questions,” and I plunged my hands
  • deep in my breeches pocket.
  • Hunsden triumphed: his eyes--his laugh announced victory.
  • “What the deuce are you laughing at, Mr. Hunsden?”
  • “At your exemplary composure. Well, lad, I’ll not bore you; I see how
  • it is: Zoraide has jilted you--married some one richer, as any sensible
  • woman would have done if she had had the chance.”
  • I made no reply--I let him think so, not feeling inclined to enter into
  • an explanation of the real state of things, and as little to forge a
  • false account; but it was not easy to blind Hunsden; my very silence,
  • instead of convincing him that he had hit the truth, seemed to render
  • him doubtful about it; he went on:--
  • “I suppose the affair has been conducted as such affairs always
  • are amongst rational people: you offered her your youth and your
  • talents--such as they are--in exchange for her position and money: I
  • don’t suppose you took appearance, or what is called LOVE, into the
  • account--for I understand she is older than you, and Brown says, rather
  • sensible-looking than beautiful. She, having then no chance of making
  • a better bargain, was at first inclined to come to terms with you, but
  • Pelet--the head of a flourishing school--stepped in with a higher bid;
  • she accepted, and he has got her: a correct transaction--perfectly
  • so--business-like and legitimate. And now we’ll talk of something else.”
  • “Do,” said I, very glad to dismiss the topic, and especially glad to
  • have baffled the sagacity of my cross-questioner--if, indeed, I had
  • baffled it; for though his words now led away from the dangerous point,
  • his eyes, keen and watchful, seemed still preoccupied with the former
  • idea.
  • “You want to hear news from X----? And what interest can you have in
  • X----? You left no friends there, for you made none. Nobody ever asks
  • after you--neither man nor woman; and if I mention your name in company,
  • the men look as if I had spoken of Prester John; and the women sneer
  • covertly. Our X---- belles must have disliked you. How did you excite
  • their displeasure?”
  • “I don’t know. I seldom spoke to them--they were nothing to me. I
  • considered them only as something to be glanced at from a distance;
  • their dresses and faces were often pleasing enough to the eye: but
  • I could not understand their conversation, nor even read their
  • countenances. When I caught snatches of what they said, I could never
  • make much of it; and the play of their lips and eyes did not help me at
  • all.”
  • “That was your fault, not theirs. There are sensible, as well as
  • handsome women in X----; women it is worth any man’s while to talk to,
  • and with whom I can talk with pleasure: but you had and have no pleasant
  • address; there is nothing in you to induce a woman to be affable. I have
  • remarked you sitting near the door in a room full of company, bent on
  • hearing, not on speaking; on observing, not on entertaining; looking
  • frigidly shy at the commencement of a party, confusingly vigilant about
  • the middle, and insultingly weary towards the end. Is that the way, do
  • you think, ever to communicate pleasure or excite interest? No; and if
  • you are generally unpopular, it is because you deserve to be so.”
  • “Content!” I ejaculated.
  • “No, you are not content; you see beauty always turning its back on
  • you; you are mortified and then you sneer. I verily believe all that is
  • desirable on earth--wealth, reputation, love--will for ever to you be
  • the ripe grapes on the high trellis: you’ll look up at them; they will
  • tantalize in you the lust of the eye; but they are out of reach: you
  • have not the address to fetch a ladder, and you’ll go away calling them
  • sour.”
  • Cutting as these words might have been under some circumstances, they
  • drew no blood now. My life was changed; my experience had been varied
  • since I left X----, but Hunsden could not know this; he had seen me only
  • in the character of Mr. Crimsworth’s clerk--a dependant amongst wealthy
  • strangers, meeting disdain with a hard front, conscious of an unsocial
  • and unattractive exterior, refusing to sue for notice which I was sure
  • would be withheld, declining to evince an admiration which I knew would
  • be scorned as worthless. He could not be aware that since then youth and
  • loveliness had been to me everyday objects; that I had studied them at
  • leisure and closely, and had seen the plain texture of truth under
  • the embroidery of appearance; nor could he, keen-sighted as he
  • was, penetrate into my heart, search my brain, and read my peculiar
  • sympathies and antipathies; he had not known me long enough, or well
  • enough, to perceive how low my feelings would ebb under some influences,
  • powerful over most minds; how high, how fast they would flow under
  • other influences, that perhaps acted with the more intense force on me,
  • because they acted on me alone. Neither could he suspect for an instant
  • the history of my communications with Mdlle. Reuter; secret to him
  • and to all others was the tale of her strange infatuation; her
  • blandishments, her wiles had been seen but by me, and to me only were
  • they known; but they had changed me, for they had proved that I COULD
  • impress. A sweeter secret nestled deeper in my heart; one full of
  • tenderness and as full of strength: it took the sting out of Hunsden’s
  • sarcasm; it kept me unbent by shame, and unstirred by wrath. But of all
  • this I could say nothing--nothing decisive at least; uncertainty sealed
  • my lips, and during the interval of silence by which alone I replied to
  • Mr. Hunsden, I made up my mind to be for the present wholly misjudged
  • by him, and misjudged I was; he thought he had been rather too hard
  • upon me, and that I was crushed by the weight of his upbraidings; so to
  • re-assure me he said, doubtless I should mend some day; I was only at
  • the beginning of life yet; and since happily I was not quite without
  • sense, every false step I made would be a good lesson.
  • Just then I turned my face a little to the light; the approach of
  • twilight, and my position in the window-seat, had, for the last ten
  • minutes, prevented him from studying my countenance; as I moved,
  • however, he caught an expression which he thus interpreted:--
  • “Confound it! How doggedly self-approving the lad looks! I thought he
  • was fit to die with shame, and there he sits grinning smiles, as good as
  • to say, ‘Let the world wag as it will, I’ve the philosopher’s stone
  • in my waist-coat pocket, and the elixir of life in my cupboard; I’m
  • independent of both Fate and Fortune.’”
  • “Hunsden--you spoke of grapes; I was thinking of a fruit I like better
  • than your X---- hot-house grapes--an unique fruit, growing wild, which I
  • have marked as my own, and hope one day to gather and taste. It is of no
  • use your offering me the draught of bitterness, or threatening me with
  • death by thirst: I have the anticipation of sweetness on my palate; the
  • hope of freshness on my lips; I can reject the unsavoury, and endure the
  • exhausting.”
  • “For how long?”
  • “Till the next opportunity for effort; and as the prize of success will
  • be a treasure after my own heart, I’ll bring a bull’s strength to the
  • struggle.”
  • “Bad luck crushes bulls as easily as bullaces; and, I believe, the fury
  • dogs you: you were born with a wooden spoon in your mouth, depend on
  • it.”
  • “I believe you; and I mean to make my wooden spoon do the work of some
  • people’s silver ladles: grasped firmly, and handled nimbly, even a
  • wooden spoon will shovel up broth.”
  • Hunsden rose: “I see,” said he; “I suppose you’re one of those who
  • develop best unwatched, and act best unaided--work your own way. Now,
  • I’ll go.” And, without another word, he was going; at the door he
  • turned:--
  • “Crimsworth Hall is sold,” said he.
  • “Sold!” was my echo.
  • “Yes; you know, of course, that your brother failed three months ago?”
  • “What! Edward Crimsworth?”
  • “Precisely; and his wife went home to her father’s; when affairs went
  • awry, his temper sympathized with them; he used her ill; I told you he
  • would be a tyrant to her some day; as to him--”
  • “Ay, as to him--what is become of him?”
  • “Nothing extraordinary--don’t be alarmed; he put himself under the
  • protection of the court, compounded with his creditors--tenpence in
  • the pound; in six weeks set up again, coaxed back his wife, and is
  • flourishing like a green bay-tree.”
  • “And Crimsworth Hall--was the furniture sold too?”
  • “Everything--from the grand piano down to the rolling-pin.”
  • “And the contents of the oak dining-room--were they sold?”
  • “Of course; why should the sofas and chairs of that room be held more
  • sacred than those of any other?”
  • “And the pictures?”
  • “What pictures? Crimsworth had no special collection that I know of--he
  • did not profess to be an amateur.”
  • “There were two portraits, one on each side the mantelpiece; you cannot
  • have forgotten them, Mr. Hunsden; you once noticed that of the lady--”
  • “Oh, I know! the thin-faced gentlewoman with a shawl put on like
  • drapery.--Why, as a matter of course, it would be sold among the other
  • things. If you had been rich, you might have bought it, for I remember
  • you said it represented your mother: you see what it is to be without a
  • sou.”
  • I did. “But surely,” I thought to myself, “I shall not always be so
  • poverty-stricken; I may one day buy it back yet.--Who purchased it? do
  • you know?” I asked.
  • “How is it likely? I never inquired who purchased anything; there spoke
  • the unpractical man--to imagine all the world is interested in what
  • interests himself! Now, good night--I’m off for Germany to-morrow
  • morning; I shall be back here in six weeks, and possibly I may call
  • and see you again; I wonder whether you’ll be still out of place!”
  • he laughed, as mockingly, as heartlessly as Mephistopheles, and so
  • laughing, vanished.
  • Some people, however indifferent they may become after a considerable
  • space of absence, always contrive to leave a pleasant impression just
  • at parting; not so Hunsden, a conference with him affected one like a
  • draught of Peruvian bark; it seemed a concentration of the specially
  • harsh, stringent, bitter; whether, like bark, it invigorated, I scarcely
  • knew.
  • A ruffled mind makes a restless pillow; I slept little on the night
  • after this interview; towards morning I began to doze, but hardly had my
  • slumber become sleep, when I was roused from it by hearing a noise in
  • my sitting room, to which my bed-room adjoined--a step, and a shoving of
  • furniture; the movement lasted barely two minutes; with the closing
  • of the door it ceased. I listened; not a mouse stirred; perhaps I
  • had dreamt it; perhaps a locataire had made a mistake, and entered my
  • apartment instead of his own. It was yet but five o’clock; neither I nor
  • the day were wide awake; I turned, and was soon unconscious. When I did
  • rise, about two hours later, I had forgotten the circumstance; the first
  • thing I saw, however, on quitting my chamber, recalled it; just pushed
  • in at the door of my sitting-room, and still standing on end, was a
  • wooden packing-case--a rough deal affair, wide but shallow; a porter
  • had doubtless shoved it forward, but seeing no occupant of the room, had
  • left it at the entrance.
  • “That is none of mine,” thought I, approaching; “it must be meant for
  • somebody else.” I stooped to examine the address:--
  • “Wm. Crimsworth, Esq., No --, -- St., Brussels.”
  • I was puzzled, but concluding that the best way to obtain information
  • was to ask within, I cut the cords and opened the case. Green baize
  • enveloped its contents, sewn carefully at the sides; I ripped the
  • pack-thread with my pen-knife, and still, as the seam gave way, glimpses
  • of gilding appeared through the widening interstices. Boards and baize
  • being at length removed, I lifted from the case a large picture, in a
  • magnificent frame; leaning it against a chair, in a position where the
  • light from the window fell favourably upon it, I stepped back--already I
  • had mounted my spectacles. A portrait-painter’s sky (the most sombre and
  • threatening of welkins), and distant trees of a conventional depth of
  • hue, raised in full relief a pale, pensive-looking female face, shadowed
  • with soft dark hair, almost blending with the equally dark clouds;
  • large, solemn eyes looked reflectively into mine; a thin cheek rested
  • on a delicate little hand; a shawl, artistically draped, half hid, half
  • showed a slight figure. A listener (had there been one) might have heard
  • me, after ten minutes’ silent gazing, utter the word “Mother!” I might
  • have said more--but with me, the first word uttered aloud in soliloquy
  • rouses consciousness; it reminds me that only crazy people talk to
  • themselves, and then I think out my monologue, instead of speaking it.
  • I had thought a long while, and a long while had contemplated the
  • intelligence, the sweetness, and--alas! the sadness also of those fine,
  • grey eyes, the mental power of that forehead, and the rare sensibility
  • of that serious mouth, when my glance, travelling downwards, fell on a
  • narrow billet, stuck in the corner of the picture, between the frame and
  • the canvas. Then I first asked, “Who sent this picture? Who thought of
  • me, saved it out of the wreck of Crimsworth Hall, and now commits it to
  • the care of its natural keeper?” I took the note from its niche; thus it
  • spoke:--
  • “There is a sort of stupid pleasure in giving a child sweets, a fool his
  • bells, a dog a bone. You are repaid by seeing the child besmear his face
  • with sugar; by witnessing how the fool’s ecstasy makes a greater fool of
  • him than ever; by watching the dog’s nature come out over his bone.
  • In giving William Crimsworth his mother’s picture, I give him sweets,
  • bells, and bone all in one; what grieves me is, that I cannot behold
  • the result; I would have added five shillings more to my bid if the
  • auctioneer could only have promised me that pleasure.
  • “H. Y. H.
  • “P.S.--You said last night you positively declined adding another item
  • to your account with me; don’t you think I’ve saved you that trouble?”
  • I muffled the picture in its green baize covering, restored it to the
  • case, and having transported the whole concern to my bed-room, put it
  • out of sight under my bed. My pleasure was now poisoned by pungent pain;
  • I determined to look no more till I could look at my ease. If Hunsden
  • had come in at that moment, I should have said to him, “I owe you
  • nothing, Hunsden--not a fraction of a farthing: you have paid yourself
  • in taunts!”
  • Too anxious to remain any longer quiescent, I had no sooner breakfasted,
  • than I repaired once more to M. Vandenhuten’s, scarcely hoping to find
  • him at home; for a week had barely elapsed since my first call: but
  • fancying I might be able to glean information as to the time when his
  • return was expected. A better result awaited me than I had anticipated,
  • for though the family were yet at Ostend, M. Vandenhuten had come over
  • to Brussels on business for the day. He received me with the quiet
  • kindness of a sincere though not excitable man. I had not sat five
  • minutes alone with him in his bureau, before I became aware of a sense
  • of ease in his presence, such as I rarely experienced with strangers.
  • I was surprised at my own composure, for, after all, I had come on
  • business to me exceedingly painful--that of soliciting a favour. I asked
  • on what basis the calm rested--I feared it might be deceptive. Ere long
  • I caught a glimpse of the ground, and at once I felt assured of its
  • solidity; I knew where it was.
  • M. Vandenhuten was rich, respected, and influential; I, poor, despised
  • and powerless; so we stood to the world at large as members of the
  • world’s society; but to each other, as a pair of human beings, our
  • positions were reversed. The Dutchman (he was not Flamand, but pure
  • Hollandais) was slow, cool, of rather dense intelligence, though sound
  • and accurate judgment; the Englishman far more nervous, active, quicker
  • both to plan and to practise, to conceive and to realize. The Dutchman
  • was benevolent, the Englishman susceptible; in short our characters
  • dovetailed, but my mind having more fire and action than his,
  • instinctively assumed and kept the predominance.
  • This point settled, and my position well ascertained, I addressed him
  • on the subject of my affairs with that genuine frankness which full
  • confidence can alone inspire. It was a pleasure to him to be so appealed
  • to; he thanked me for giving him this opportunity of using a little
  • exertion in my behalf. I went on to explain to him that my wish was not
  • so much to be helped, as to be put into the way of helping myself;
  • of him I did not want exertion--that was to be my part--but only
  • information and recommendation. Soon after I rose to go. He held out his
  • hand at parting--an action of greater significance with foreigners
  • than with Englishmen. As I exchanged a smile with him, I thought the
  • benevolence of his truthful face was better than the intelligence of my
  • own. Characters of my order experience a balm-like solace in the contact
  • of such souls as animated the honest breast of Victor Vandenhuten.
  • The next fortnight was a period of many alternations; my existence
  • during its lapse resembled a sky of one of those autumnal nights which
  • are specially haunted by meteors and falling stars. Hopes and fears,
  • expectations and disappointments, descended in glancing showers from
  • zenith to horizon; but all were transient, and darkness followed swift
  • each vanishing apparition. M. Vandenhuten aided me faithfully; he set me
  • on the track of several places, and himself made efforts to secure
  • them for me; but for a long time solicitation and recommendation were
  • vain--the door either shut in my face when I was about to walk in,
  • or another candidate, entering before me, rendered my further advance
  • useless. Feverish and roused, no disappointment arrested me; defeat
  • following fast on defeat served as stimulants to will. I forgot
  • fastidiousness, conquered reserve, thrust pride from me: I asked, I
  • persevered, I remonstrated, I dunned. It is so that openings are forced
  • into the guarded circle where Fortune sits dealing favours round. My
  • perseverance made me known; my importunity made me remarked. I was
  • inquired about; my former pupils’ parents, gathering the reports of
  • their children, heard me spoken of as talented, and they echoed the
  • word: the sound, bandied about at random, came at last to ears which,
  • but for its universality, it might never have reached; and at the very
  • crisis when I had tried my last effort and knew not what to do, Fortune
  • looked in at me one morning, as I sat in drear and almost desperate
  • deliberation on my bedstead, nodded with the familiarity of an old
  • acquaintance--though God knows I had never met her before--and threw a
  • prize into my lap.
  • In the second week of October, 18--, I got the appointment of English
  • professor to all the classes of ---- College, Brussels, with a salary
  • of three thousand francs per annum; and the certainty of being able, by
  • dint of the reputation and publicity accompanying the position, to make
  • as much more by private means. The official notice, which communicated
  • this information, mentioned also that it was the strong recommendation
  • of M. Vandenhuten, negociant, which had turned the scale of choice in my
  • favour.
  • No sooner had I read the announcement than I hurried to M. Vandenhuten’s
  • bureau, pushed the document under his nose, and when he had perused
  • it, took both his hands, and thanked him with unrestrained vivacity.
  • My vivid words and emphatic gesture moved his Dutch calm to unwonted
  • sensation. He said he was happy--glad to have served me; but he had
  • done nothing meriting such thanks. He had not laid out a centime--only
  • scratched a few words on a sheet of paper.
  • Again I repeated to him--
  • “You have made me quite happy, and in a way that suits me; I do not
  • feel an obligation irksome, conferred by your kind hand; I do not feel
  • disposed to shun you because you have done me a favour; from this day
  • you must consent to admit me to your intimate acquaintance, for I shall
  • hereafter recur again and again to the pleasure of your society.”
  • “Ainsi soit-il,” was the reply, accompanied by a smile of benignant
  • content. I went away with its sunshine in my heart.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • IT was two o’clock when I returned to my lodgings; my dinner, just
  • brought in from a neighbouring hotel, smoked on the table; I sat down
  • thinking to eat--had the plate been heaped with potsherds and broken
  • glass, instead of boiled beef and haricots, I could not have made a more
  • signal failure: appetite had forsaken me. Impatient of seeing food
  • which I could not taste, I put it all aside into a cupboard, and then
  • demanded, “What shall I do till evening?” for before six P.M. it would
  • be vain to seek the Rue Notre Dame aux Neiges; its inhabitant (for me
  • it had but one) was detained by her vocation elsewhere. I walked in the
  • streets of Brussels, and I walked in my own room from two o’clock
  • till six; never once in that space of time did I sit down. I was in my
  • chamber when the last-named hour struck; I had just bathed my face and
  • feverish hands, and was standing near the glass; my cheek was crimson,
  • my eye was flame, still all my features looked quite settled and
  • calm. Descending swiftly the stair and stepping out, I was glad to see
  • Twilight drawing on in clouds; such shade was to me like a grateful
  • screen, and the chill of latter Autumn, breathing in a fitful wind from
  • the north-west, met me as a refreshing coolness. Still I saw it was cold
  • to others, for the women I passed were wrapped in shawls, and the men
  • had their coats buttoned close.
  • When are we quite happy? Was I so then? No; an urgent and growing dread
  • worried my nerves, and had worried them since the first moment good
  • tidings had reached me. How was Frances? It was ten weeks since I had
  • seen her, six since I had heard from her, or of her. I had answered
  • her letter by a brief note, friendly but calm, in which no mention of
  • continued correspondence or further visits was made. At that hour my
  • bark hung on the topmost curl of a wave of fate, and I knew not on what
  • shoal the onward rush of the billow might hurl it; I would not then
  • attach her destiny to mine by the slightest thread; if doomed to split
  • on the rock, or run aground on the sand-bank, I was resolved no other
  • vessel should share my disaster: but six weeks was a long time; and
  • could it be that she was still well and doing well? Were not all sages
  • agreed in declaring that happiness finds no climax on earth? Dared
  • I think that but half a street now divided me from the full cup of
  • contentment--the draught drawn from waters said to flow only in heaven?
  • I was at the door; I entered the quiet house; I mounted the stairs; the
  • lobby was void and still, all the doors closed; I looked for the neat
  • green mat; it lay duly in its place.
  • “Signal of hope!” I said, and advanced. “But I will be a little calmer;
  • I am not going to rush in, and get up a scene directly.” Forcibly
  • staying my eager step, I paused on the mat.
  • “What an absolute hush! Is she in? Is anybody in?” I demanded to
  • myself. A little tinkle, as of cinders falling from a grate, replied;
  • a movement--a fire was gently stirred; and the slight rustle of life
  • continuing, a step paced equably backwards and forwards, backwards and
  • forwards, in the apartment. Fascinated, I stood, more fixedly fascinated
  • when a voice rewarded the attention of my strained ear--so low, so
  • self-addressed, I never fancied the speaker otherwise than alone;
  • solitude might speak thus in a desert, or in the hall of a forsaken
  • house.
  • “‘And ne’er but once, my son,’ he said,
  • ‘Was yon dark cavern trod;
  • In persecution’s iron days,
  • When the land was left by God.
  • From Bewley’s bog, with slaughter red,
  • A wanderer hither drew;
  • And oft he stopp’d and turn’d his head,
  • As by fits the night-winds blew.
  • For trampling round by Cheviot-edge
  • Were heard the troopers keen;
  • And frequent from the Whitelaw ridge
  • The death-shot flash’d between.’” etc. etc.
  • The old Scotch ballad was partly recited, then dropt; a pause ensued;
  • then another strain followed, in French, of which the purport,
  • translated, ran as follows:--
  • I gave, at first, attention close;
  • Then interest warm ensued;
  • From interest, as improvement rose,
  • Succeeded gratitude.
  • Obedience was no effort soon,
  • And labour was no pain;
  • If tired, a word, a glance alone
  • Would give me strength again.
  • From others of the studious band,
  • Ere long he singled me;
  • But only by more close demand,
  • And sterner urgency.
  • The task he from another took,
  • From me he did reject;
  • He would no slight omission brook,
  • And suffer no defect.
  • If my companions went astray,
  • He scarce their wanderings blam’d;
  • If I but falter’d in the way,
  • His anger fiercely flam’d.
  • Something stirred in an adjoining chamber; it would not do to be
  • surprised eaves-dropping; I tapped hastily, and as hastily entered.
  • Frances was just before me; she had been walking slowly in her room,
  • and her step was checked by my advent: Twilight only was with her, and
  • tranquil, ruddy Firelight; to these sisters, the Bright and the Dark,
  • she had been speaking, ere I entered, in poetry. Sir Walter Scott’s
  • voice, to her a foreign, far-off sound, a mountain echo, had uttered
  • itself in the first stanzas; the second, I thought, from the style and
  • the substance, was the language of her own heart. Her face was grave,
  • its expression concentrated; she bent on me an unsmiling eye--an eye
  • just returning from abstraction, just awaking from dreams: well-arranged
  • was her simple attire, smooth her dark hair, orderly her tranquil room;
  • but what--with her thoughtful look, her serious self-reliance, her
  • bent to meditation and haply inspiration--what had she to do with love?
  • “Nothing,” was the answer of her own sad, though gentle countenance; it
  • seemed to say, “I must cultivate fortitude and cling to poetry; one is
  • to be my support and the other my solace through life. Human affections
  • do not bloom, nor do human passions glow for me.” Other women have such
  • thoughts. Frances, had she been as desolate as she deemed, would not
  • have been worse off than thousands of her sex. Look at the rigid and
  • formal race of old maids--the race whom all despise; they have fed
  • themselves, from youth upwards, on maxims of resignation and endurance.
  • Many of them get ossified with the dry diet; self-control is so
  • continually their thought, so perpetually their object, that at last
  • it absorbs the softer and more agreeable qualities of their nature; and
  • they die mere models of austerity, fashioned out of a little parchment
  • and much bone. Anatomists will tell you that there is a heart in the
  • withered old maid’s carcass--the same as in that of any cherished wife
  • or proud mother in the land. Can this be so? I really don’t know; but
  • feel inclined to doubt it.
  • I came forward, bade Frances “good evening,” and took my seat. The chair
  • I had chosen was one she had probably just left; it stood by a little
  • table where were her open desk and papers. I know not whether she had
  • fully recognized me at first, but she did so now; and in a voice, soft
  • but quiet, she returned my greeting. I had shown no eagerness; she took
  • her cue from me, and evinced no surprise. We met as we had always met,
  • as master and pupil--nothing more. I proceeded to handle the papers;
  • Frances, observant and serviceable, stepped into an inner room, brought
  • a candle, lit it, placed it by me; then drew the curtain over the
  • lattice, and having added a little fresh fuel to the already bright
  • fire, she drew a second chair to the table and sat down at my right
  • hand, a little removed. The paper on the top was a translation of
  • some grave French author into English, but underneath lay a sheet with
  • stanzas; on this I laid hands. Frances half rose, made a movement to
  • recover the captured spoil, saying, that was nothing--a mere copy of
  • verses. I put by resistance with the decision I knew she never long
  • opposed; but on this occasion her fingers had fastened on the paper. I
  • had quietly to unloose them; their hold dissolved to my touch; her hand
  • shrunk away; my own would fain have followed it, but for the present I
  • forbade such impulse. The first page of the sheet was occupied with
  • the lines I had overheard; the sequel was not exactly the writer’s own
  • experience, but a composition by portions of that experience suggested.
  • Thus while egotism was avoided, the fancy was exercised, and the heart
  • satisfied. I translate as before, and my translation is nearly literal;
  • it continued thus:--
  • When sickness stay’d awhile my course,
  • He seem’d impatient still,
  • Because his pupil’s flagging force
  • Could not obey his will.
  • One day when summoned to the bed
  • Where pain and I did strive,
  • I heard him, as he bent his head,
  • Say, “God, she must revive!”
  • I felt his hand, with gentle stress,
  • A moment laid on mine,
  • And wished to mark my consciousness
  • By some responsive sign.
  • But pow’rless then to speak or move,
  • I only felt, within,
  • The sense of Hope, the strength of Love,
  • Their healing work begin.
  • And as he from the room withdrew,
  • My heart his steps pursued;
  • I long’d to prove, by efforts new;
  • My speechless gratitude.
  • When once again I took my place,
  • Long vacant, in the class,
  • Th’ unfrequent smile across his face
  • Did for one moment pass.
  • The lessons done; the signal made
  • Of glad release and play,
  • He, as he passed, an instant stay’d,
  • One kindly word to say.
  • “Jane, till to-morrow you are free
  • From tedious task and rule;
  • This afternoon I must not see
  • That yet pale face in school.
  • “Seek in the garden-shades a seat,
  • Far from the play-ground din;
  • The sun is warm, the air is sweet:
  • Stay till I call you in.”
  • A long and pleasant afternoon
  • I passed in those green bowers;
  • All silent, tranquil, and alone
  • With birds, and bees, and flowers.
  • Yet, when my master’s voice I heard
  • Call, from the window, “Jane!”
  • I entered, joyful, at the word,
  • The busy house again.
  • He, in the hall, paced up and down;
  • He paused as I passed by;
  • His forehead stern relaxed its frown:
  • He raised his deep-set eye.
  • “Not quite so pale,” he murmured low.
  • “Now Jane, go rest awhile.”
  • And as I smiled, his smoothened brow
  • Returned as glad a smile.
  • My perfect health restored, he took
  • His mien austere again;
  • And, as before, he would not brook
  • The slightest fault from Jane.
  • The longest task, the hardest theme
  • Fell to my share as erst,
  • And still I toiled to place my name
  • In every study first.
  • He yet begrudged and stinted praise,
  • But I had learnt to read
  • The secret meaning of his face,
  • And that was my best meed.
  • Even when his hasty temper spoke
  • In tones that sorrow stirred,
  • My grief was lulled as soon as woke
  • By some relenting word.
  • And when he lent some precious book,
  • Or gave some fragrant flower,
  • I did not quail to Envy’s look,
  • Upheld by Pleasure’s power.
  • At last our school ranks took their ground,
  • The hard-fought field I won;
  • The prize, a laurel-wreath, was bound
  • My throbbing forehead on.
  • Low at my master’s knee I bent,
  • The offered crown to meet;
  • Its green leaves through my temples sent
  • A thrill as wild as sweet.
  • The strong pulse of Ambition struck
  • In every vein I owned;
  • At the same instant, bleeding broke
  • A secret, inward wound.
  • The hour of triumph was to me
  • The hour of sorrow sore;
  • A day hence I must cross the sea,
  • Ne’er to recross it more.
  • An hour hence, in my master’s room
  • I with him sat alone,
  • And told him what a dreary gloom
  • O’er joy had parting thrown.
  • He little said; the time was brief,
  • The ship was soon to sail,
  • And while I sobbed in bitter grief,
  • My master but looked pale.
  • They called in haste; he bade me go,
  • Then snatched me back again;
  • He held me fast and murmured low,
  • “Why will they part us, Jane?”
  • “Were you not happy in my care?
  • Did I not faithful prove?
  • Will others to my darling bear
  • As true, as deep a love?
  • “O God, watch o’er my foster child!
  • O guard her gentle head!
  • When minds are high and tempests wild
  • Protection round her spread!
  • “They call again; leave then my breast;
  • Quit thy true shelter, Jane;
  • But when deceived, repulsed, opprest,
  • Come home to me again!”
  • I read--then dreamily made marks on the margin with my pencil; thinking
  • all the while of other things; thinking that “Jane” was now at my side;
  • no child, but a girl of nineteen; and she might be mine, so my heart
  • affirmed; Poverty’s curse was taken off me; Envy and Jealousy were
  • far away, and unapprized of this our quiet meeting; the frost of the
  • Master’s manner might melt; I felt the thaw coming fast, whether I would
  • or not; no further need for the eye to practise a hard look, for the
  • brow to compress its expanse into a stern fold: it was now permitted
  • to suffer the outward revelation of the inward glow--to seek, demand,
  • elicit an answering ardour. While musing thus, I thought that the grass
  • on Hermon never drank the fresh dews of sunset more gratefully than my
  • feelings drank the bliss of this hour.
  • Frances rose, as if restless; she passed before me to stir the fire,
  • which did not want stirring; she lifted and put down the little
  • ornaments on the mantelpiece; her dress waved within a yard of me;
  • slight, straight, and elegant, she stood erect on the hearth.
  • There are impulses we can control; but there are others which control
  • us, because they attain us with a tiger-leap, and are our masters ere
  • we have seen them. Perhaps, though, such impulses are seldom altogether
  • bad; perhaps Reason, by a process as brief as quiet, a process that
  • is finished ere felt, has ascertained the sanity of the deed. Instinct
  • meditates, and feels justified in remaining passive while it is
  • performed. I know I did not reason, I did not plan or intend, yet,
  • whereas one moment I was sitting solus on the chair near the table,
  • the next, I held Frances on my knee, placed there with sharpness and
  • decision, and retained with exceeding tenacity.
  • “Monsieur!” cried Frances, and was still: not another word escaped her
  • lips; sorely confounded she seemed during the lapse of the first few
  • moments; but the amazement soon subsided; terror did not succeed, nor
  • fury: after all, she was only a little nearer than she had ever been
  • before, to one she habitually respected and trusted; embarrassment might
  • have impelled her to contend, but self-respect checked resistance where
  • resistance was useless.
  • “Frances, how much regard have you for me?” was my demand. No answer;
  • the situation was yet too new and surprising to permit speech. On this
  • consideration, I compelled myself for some seconds to tolerate her
  • silence, though impatient of it: presently, I repeated the same
  • question--probably, not in the calmest of tones; she looked at me; my
  • face, doubtless, was no model of composure, my eyes no still wells of
  • tranquillity.
  • “Do speak,” I urged; and a very low, hurried, yet still arch voice
  • said--
  • “Monsieur, vous me faites mal; de grace lachez un peu ma main droite.”
  • In truth I became aware that I was holding the said “main droite” in
  • a somewhat ruthless grasp: I did as desired; and, for the third time,
  • asked more gently--
  • “Frances, how much regard have you for me?”
  • “Mon maitre, j’en ai beaucoup,” was the truthful rejoinder.
  • “Frances, have you enough to give yourself to me as my wife?--to accept
  • me as your husband?”
  • I felt the agitation of the heart, I saw “the purple light of love” cast
  • its glowing reflection on cheeks, temples, neck; I desired to consult
  • the eye, but sheltering lash and lid forbade.
  • “Monsieur,” said the soft voice at last,--“Monsieur desire savoir si je
  • consens--si--enfin, si je veux me marier avec lui?”
  • “Justement.”
  • “Monsieur sera-t-il aussi bon mari qu’il a ete bon maitre?”
  • “I will try, Frances.”
  • A pause; then with a new, yet still subdued inflexion of the voice--an
  • inflexion which provoked while it pleased me--accompanied, too, by a
  • “sourire a la fois fin et timide” in perfect harmony with the tone:--
  • “C’est a dire, monsieur sera toujours un peu entete exigeant,
  • volontaire--?”
  • “Have I been so, Frances?”
  • “Mais oui; vous le savez bien.”
  • “Have I been nothing else?”
  • “Mais oui; vous avez ete mon meilleur ami.”
  • “And what, Frances, are you to me?”
  • “Votre devouee eleve, qui vous aime de tout son coeur.”
  • “Will my pupil consent to pass her life with me? Speak English now,
  • Frances.”
  • Some moments were taken for reflection; the answer, pronounced slowly,
  • ran thus:--
  • “You have always made me happy; I like to hear you speak; I like to
  • see you; I like to be near you; I believe you are very good, and very
  • superior; I know you are stern to those who are careless and idle, but
  • you are kind, very kind to the attentive and industrious, even if they
  • are not clever. Master, I should be GLAD to live with you always;”
  • and she made a sort of movement, as if she would have clung to me, but
  • restraining herself she only added with earnest emphasis--“Master, I
  • consent to pass my life with you.”
  • “Very well, Frances.”
  • I drew her a little nearer to my heart; I took a first kiss from her
  • lips, thereby sealing the compact, now framed between us; afterwards she
  • and I were silent, nor was our silence brief. Frances’ thoughts, during
  • this interval, I know not, nor did I attempt to guess them; I was not
  • occupied in searching her countenance, nor in otherwise troubling her
  • composure. The peace I felt, I wished her to feel; my arm, it is true,
  • still detained her; but with a restraint that was gentle enough, so long
  • as no opposition tightened it. My gaze was on the red fire; my heart was
  • measuring its own content; it sounded and sounded, and found the depth
  • fathomless.
  • “Monsieur,” at last said my quiet companion, as stirless in her
  • happiness as a mouse in its terror. Even now in speaking she scarcely
  • lifted her head.
  • “Well, Frances?” I like unexaggerated intercourse; it is not my way to
  • overpower with amorous epithets, any more than to worry with selfishly
  • importunate caresses.
  • “Monsieur est raisonnable, n’est-ce pas?”
  • “Yes; especially when I am requested to be so in English: but why do
  • you ask me? You see nothing vehement or obtrusive in my manner; am I not
  • tranquil enough?”
  • “Ce n’est pas cela--” began Frances.
  • “English!” I reminded her.
  • “Well, monsieur, I wished merely to say, that I should like, of course,
  • to retain my employment of teaching. You will teach still, I suppose,
  • monsieur?”
  • “Oh, yes! It is all I have to depend on.”
  • “Bon!--I mean good. Thus we shall have both the same profession. I like
  • that; and my efforts to get on will be as unrestrained as yours--will
  • they not, monsieur?”
  • “You are laying plans to be independent of me,” said I.
  • “Yes, monsieur; I must be no incumbrance to you--no burden in any way.”
  • “But, Frances, I have not yet told you what my prospects are. I have
  • left M. Pelet’s; and after nearly a month’s seeking, I have got another
  • place, with a salary of three thousand francs a year, which I can easily
  • double by a little additional exertion. Thus you see it would be useless
  • for you to fag yourself by going out to give lessons; on six thousand
  • francs you and I can live, and live well.”
  • Frances seemed to consider. There is something flattering to man’s
  • strength, something consonant to his honourable pride, in the idea of
  • becoming the providence of what he loves--feeding and clothing it, as
  • God does the lilies of the field. So, to decide her resolution, I went
  • on:--
  • “Life has been painful and laborious enough to you so far, Frances; you
  • require complete rest; your twelve hundred francs would not form a very
  • important addition to our income, and what sacrifice of comfort to earn
  • it! Relinquish your labours: you must be weary, and let me have the
  • happiness of giving you rest.”
  • I am not sure whether Frances had accorded due attention to my harangue;
  • instead of answering me with her usual respectful promptitude, she only
  • sighed and said,--
  • “How rich you are, monsieur!” and then she stirred uneasy in my
  • arms. “Three thousand francs!” she murmured, “While I get only twelve
  • hundred!” She went on faster. “However, it must be so for the present;
  • and, monsieur, were you not saying something about my giving up my
  • place? Oh no! I shall hold it fast;” and her little fingers emphatically
  • tightened on mine.
  • “Think of my marrying you to be kept by you, monsieur! I could not do
  • it; and how dull my days would be! You would be away teaching in close,
  • noisy school-rooms, from morning till evening, and I should be lingering
  • at home, unemployed and solitary; I should get depressed and sullen, and
  • you would soon tire of me.”
  • “Frances, you could read and study--two things you like so well.”
  • “Monsieur, I could not; I like a contemplative life, but I like an
  • active life better; I must act in some way, and act with you. I have
  • taken notice, monsieur, that people who are only in each other’s company
  • for amusement, never really like each other so well, or esteem each
  • other so highly, as those who work together, and perhaps suffer
  • together.”
  • “You speak God’s truth,” said I at last, “and you shall have your own
  • way, for it is the best way. Now, as a reward for such ready consent,
  • give me a voluntary kiss.”
  • After some hesitation, natural to a novice in the art of kissing, she
  • brought her lips into very shy and gentle contact with my forehead; I
  • took the small gift as a loan, and repaid it promptly, and with generous
  • interest.
  • I know not whether Frances was really much altered since the time
  • I first saw her; but, as I looked at her now, I felt that she was
  • singularly changed for me; the sad eye, the pale cheek, the dejected
  • and joyless countenance I remembered as her early attributes, were quite
  • gone, and now I saw a face dressed in graces; smile, dimple, and
  • rosy tint rounded its contours and brightened its hues. I had been
  • accustomed to nurse a flattering idea that my strong attachment to her
  • proved some particular perspicacity in my nature; she was not handsome,
  • she was not rich, she was not even accomplished, yet was she my life’s
  • treasure; I must then be a man of peculiar discernment. To-night my eyes
  • opened on the mistake I had made; I began to suspect that it was only my
  • tastes which were unique, not my power of discovering and appreciating
  • the superiority of moral worth over physical charms. For me Frances
  • had physical charms: in her there was no deformity to get over; none of
  • those prominent defects of eyes, teeth, complexion, shape, which hold at
  • bay the admiration of the boldest male champions of intellect (for
  • women can love a downright ugly man if he be but talented); had she been
  • either “edentee, myope, rugueuse, ou bossue,” my feelings towards
  • her might still have been kindly, but they could never have been
  • impassioned; I had affection for the poor little misshapen Sylvie, but
  • for her I could never have had love. It is true Frances’ mental points
  • had been the first to interest me, and they still retained the strongest
  • hold on my preference; but I liked the graces of her person too. I
  • derived a pleasure, purely material, from contemplating the clearness
  • of her brown eyes, the fairness of her fine skin, the purity of her
  • well-set teeth, the proportion of her delicate form; and that pleasure
  • I could ill have dispensed with. It appeared, then, that I too was a
  • sensualist, in my temperate and fastidious way.
  • Now, reader, during the last two pages I have been giving you honey
  • fresh from flowers, but you must not live entirely on food so luscious;
  • taste then a little gall--just a drop, by way of change.
  • At a somewhat late hour I returned to my lodgings: having temporarily
  • forgotten that man had any such coarse cares as those of eating and
  • drinking, I went to bed fasting. I had been excited and in action all
  • day, and had tasted no food since eight that morning; besides, for a
  • fortnight past, I had known no rest either of body or mind; the last few
  • hours had been a sweet delirium, it would not subside now, and till long
  • after midnight, broke with troubled ecstacy the rest I so much needed.
  • At last I dozed, but not for long; it was yet quite dark when I awoke,
  • and my waking was like that of Job when a spirit passed before his face,
  • and like him, “the hair of my flesh stood up.” I might continue the
  • parallel, for in truth, though I saw nothing, yet “a thing was secretly
  • brought unto me, and mine ear received a little thereof; there was
  • silence, and I heard a voice,” saying--“In the midst of life we are in
  • death.”
  • That sound, and the sensation of chill anguish accompanying it, many
  • would have regarded as supernatural; but I recognized it at once as the
  • effect of reaction. Man is ever clogged with his mortality, and it was
  • my mortal nature which now faltered and plained; my nerves, which jarred
  • and gave a false sound, because the soul, of late rushing headlong to an
  • aim, had overstrained the body’s comparative weakness. A horror of great
  • darkness fell upon me; I felt my chamber invaded by one I had known
  • formerly, but had thought for ever departed. I was temporarily a prey to
  • hypochondria.
  • She had been my acquaintance, nay, my guest, once before in boyhood; I
  • had entertained her at bed and board for a year; for that space of time
  • I had her to myself in secret; she lay with me, she ate with me, she
  • walked out with me, showing me nooks in woods, hollows in hills, where
  • we could sit together, and where she could drop her drear veil over me,
  • and so hide sky and sun, grass and green tree; taking me entirely to her
  • death-cold bosom, and holding me with arms of bone. What tales she would
  • tell me at such hours! What songs she would recite in my ears! How she
  • would discourse to me of her own country--the grave--and again and again
  • promise to conduct me there ere long; and, drawing me to the very brink
  • of a black, sullen river, show me, on the other side, shores unequal
  • with mound, monument, and tablet, standing up in a glimmer more hoary
  • than moonlight. “Necropolis!” she would whisper, pointing to the pale
  • piles, and add, “It contains a mansion prepared for you.”
  • But my boyhood was lonely, parentless; uncheered by brother or sister;
  • and there was no marvel that, just as I rose to youth, a sorceress,
  • finding me lost in vague mental wanderings, with many affections and few
  • objects, glowing aspirations and gloomy prospects, strong desires and
  • slender hopes, should lift up her illusive lamp to me in the distance,
  • and lure me to her vaulted home of horrors. No wonder her spells
  • THEN had power; but NOW, when my course was widening, my prospect
  • brightening; when my affections had found a rest; when my desires,
  • folding wings, weary with long flight, had just alighted on the very lap
  • of fruition, and nestled there warm, content, under the caress of a soft
  • hand--why did hypochondria accost me now?
  • I repulsed her as one would a dreaded and ghastly concubine coming to
  • embitter a husband’s heart toward his young bride; in vain; she kept her
  • sway over me for that night and the next day, and eight succeeding days.
  • Afterwards, my spirits began slowly to recover their tone; my appetite
  • returned, and in a fortnight I was well. I had gone about as usual all
  • the time, and had said nothing to anybody of what I felt; but I was glad
  • when the evil spirit departed from me, and I could again seek Frances,
  • and sit at her side, freed from the dreadful tyranny of my demon.
  • CHAPTER XXIV.
  • ONE fine, frosty Sunday in November, Frances and I took a long walk; we
  • made the tour of the city by the Boulevards; and, afterwards, Frances
  • being a little tired, we sat down on one of those wayside seats placed
  • under the trees, at intervals, for the accommodation of the weary.
  • Frances was telling me about Switzerland; the subject animated her;
  • and I was just thinking that her eyes spoke full as eloquently as her
  • tongue, when she stopped and remarked--
  • “Monsieur, there is a gentleman who knows you.”
  • I looked up; three fashionably dressed men were just then
  • passing--Englishmen, I knew by their air and gait as well as by their
  • features; in the tallest of the trio I at once recognized Mr. Hunsden;
  • he was in the act of lifting his hat to Frances; afterwards, he made a
  • grimace at me, and passed on.
  • “Who is he?”
  • “A person I knew in England.”
  • “Why did he bow to me? He does not know me.”
  • “Yes, he does know you, in his way.”
  • “How, monsieur?” (She still called me “monsieur”; I could not persuade
  • her to adopt any more familiar term.)
  • “Did you not read the expression of his eyes?”
  • “Of his eyes? No. What did they say?”
  • “To you they said, ‘How do you do, Wilhelmina Crimsworth?’ To me, ‘So
  • you have found your counterpart at last; there she sits, the female of
  • your kind!’”
  • “Monsieur, you could not read all that in his eyes; he was so soon
  • gone.”
  • “I read that and more, Frances; I read that he will probably call on me
  • this evening, or on some future occasion shortly; and I have no doubt
  • he will insist on being introduced to you; shall I bring him to your
  • rooms?”
  • “If you please, monsieur--I have no objection; I think, indeed, I should
  • rather like to see him nearer; he looks so original.”
  • As I had anticipated, Mr. Hunsden came that evening. The first thing he
  • said was:--
  • “You need not begin boasting, Monsieur le Professeur; I know about your
  • appointment to ---- College, and all that; Brown has told me.” Then
  • he intimated that he had returned from Germany but a day or two since;
  • afterwards, he abruptly demanded whether that was Madame Pelet-Reuter
  • with whom he had seen me on the Boulevards. I was going to utter a
  • rather emphatic negative, but on second thoughts I checked myself, and,
  • seeming to assent, asked what he thought of her?
  • “As to her, I’ll come to that directly; but first I’ve a word for you. I
  • see you are a scoundrel; you’ve no business to be promenading about with
  • another man’s wife. I thought you had sounder sense than to get mixed up
  • in foreign hodge-podge of this sort.”
  • “But the lady?”
  • “She’s too good for you evidently; she is like you, but something better
  • than you--no beauty, though; yet when she rose (for I looked back to
  • see you both walk away) I thought her figure and carriage good. These
  • foreigners understand grace. What the devil has she done with Pelet? She
  • has not been married to him three months--he must be a spoon!”
  • I would not let the mistake go too far; I did not like it much.
  • “Pelet? How your head runs on Mons. and Madame Pelet! You are always
  • talking about them. I wish to the gods you had wed Mdlle. Zoraide
  • yourself!”
  • “Was that young gentlewoman not Mdlle. Zoraide?”
  • “No; nor Madame Zoraide either.”
  • “Why did you tell a lie, then?”
  • “I told no lie; but you are is such a hurry. She is a pupil of mine--a
  • Swiss girl.”
  • “And of course you are going to be married to her? Don’t deny that.”
  • “Married! I think I shall--if Fate spares us both ten weeks longer. That
  • is my little wild strawberry, Hunsden, whose sweetness made me careless
  • of your hothouse grapes.”
  • “Stop! No boasting--no heroics; I won’t hear them. What is she? To what
  • caste does she belong?”
  • I smiled. Hunsden unconsciously laid stress on the word caste, and, in
  • fact, republican, lord-hater as he was, Hunsden was as proud of his old
  • ----shire blood, of his descent and family standing, respectable and
  • respected through long generations back, as any peer in the realm of
  • his Norman race and Conquest-dated title. Hunsden would as little have
  • thought of taking a wife from a caste inferior to his own, as a Stanley
  • would think of mating with a Cobden. I enjoyed the surprise I should
  • give; I enjoyed the triumph of my practice over his theory; and leaning
  • over the table, and uttering the words slowly but with repressed glee, I
  • said concisely--
  • “She is a lace-mender.”
  • Hunsden examined me. He did not SAY he was surprised, but surprised he
  • was; he had his own notions of good breeding. I saw he suspected I
  • was going to take some very rash step; but repressing declamation or
  • remonstrance, he only answered--
  • “Well, you are the best judge of your own affairs. A lace-mender may
  • make a good wife as well as a lady; but of course you have taken care
  • to ascertain thoroughly that since she has not education, fortune or
  • station, she is well furnished with such natural qualities as you think
  • most likely to conduce to your happiness. Has she many relations?”
  • “None in Brussels.”
  • “That is better. Relations are often the real evil in such cases. I
  • cannot but think that a train of inferior connections would have been a
  • bore to you to your life’s end.”
  • After sitting in silence a little while longer, Hunsden rose, and was
  • quietly bidding me good evening; the polite, considerate manner in which
  • he offered me his hand (a thing he had never done before), convinced me
  • that he thought I had made a terrible fool of myself; and that, ruined
  • and thrown away as I was, it was no time for sarcasm or cynicism, or
  • indeed for anything but indulgence and forbearance.
  • “Good night, William,” he said, in a really soft voice, while his face
  • looked benevolently compassionate. “Good night, lad. I wish you and your
  • future wife much prosperity; and I hope she will satisfy your fastidious
  • soul.”
  • I had much ado to refrain from laughing as I beheld the magnanimous pity
  • of his mien; maintaining, however, a grave air, I said:--
  • “I thought you would have liked to have seen Mdlle. Henri?”
  • “Oh, that is the name! Yes--if it would be convenient, I should like to
  • see her--but----.” He hesitated.
  • “Well?”
  • “I should on no account wish to intrude.”
  • “Come, then,” said I. We set out. Hunsden no doubt regarded me as a
  • rash, imprudent man, thus to show my poor little grisette sweetheart,
  • in her poor little unfurnished grenier; but he prepared to act the real
  • gentleman, having, in fact, the kernel of that character, under the
  • harsh husk it pleased him to wear by way of mental mackintosh. He talked
  • affably, and even gently, as we went along the street; he had never been
  • so civil to me in his life. We reached the house, entered, ascended the
  • stair; on gaining the lobby, Hunsden turned to mount a narrower stair
  • which led to a higher story; I saw his mind was bent on the attics.
  • “Here, Mr. Hunsden,” said I quietly, tapping at Frances’ door. He
  • turned; in his genuine politeness he was a little disconcerted at
  • having made the mistake; his eye reverted to the green mat, but he said
  • nothing.
  • We walked in, and Frances rose from her seat near the table to receive
  • us; her mourning attire gave her a recluse, rather conventual, but
  • withal very distinguished look; its grave simplicity added nothing
  • to beauty, but much to dignity; the finish of the white collar and
  • manchettes sufficed for a relief to the merino gown of solemn black;
  • ornament was forsworn. Frances curtsied with sedate grace, looking, as
  • she always did, when one first accosted her, more a woman to respect
  • than to love; I introduced Mr. Hunsden, and she expressed her happiness
  • at making his acquaintance in French. The pure and polished accent, the
  • low yet sweet and rather full voice, produced their effect immediately;
  • Hunsden spoke French in reply; I had not heard him speak that language
  • before; he managed it very well. I retired to the window-seat; Mr.
  • Hunsden, at his hostess’s invitation, occupied a chair near the hearth;
  • from my position I could see them both, and the room too, at a glance.
  • The room was so clean and bright, it looked like a little polished
  • cabinet; a glass filled with flowers in the centre of the table, a
  • fresh rose in each china cup on the mantelpiece gave it an air of FETE.
  • Frances was serious, and Mr. Hunsden subdued, but both mutually polite;
  • they got on at the French swimmingly: ordinary topics were discussed
  • with great state and decorum; I thought I had never seen two such models
  • of propriety, for Hunsden (thanks to the constraint of the foreign
  • tongue) was obliged to shape his phrases, and measure his sentences,
  • with a care that forbade any eccentricity. At last England was
  • mentioned, and Frances proceeded to ask questions. Animated by degrees,
  • she began to change, just as a grave night-sky changes at the approach
  • of sunrise: first it seemed as if her forehead cleared, then her eyes
  • glittered, her features relaxed, and became quite mobile; her subdued
  • complexion grew warm and transparent; to me, she now looked pretty;
  • before, she had only looked ladylike.
  • She had many things to say to the Englishman just fresh from his
  • island-country, and she urged him with an enthusiasm of curiosity, which
  • ere long thawed Hunsden’s reserve as fire thaws a congealed viper. I use
  • this not very flattering comparison because he vividly reminded me of a
  • snake waking from torpor, as he erected his tall form, reared his head,
  • before a little declined, and putting back his hair from his broad Saxon
  • forehead, showed unshaded the gleam of almost savage satire which his
  • interlocutor’s tone of eagerness and look of ardour had sufficed at
  • once to kindle in his soul and elicit from his eyes: he was himself;
  • as Frances was herself, and in none but his own language would he now
  • address her.
  • “You understand English?” was the prefatory question.
  • “A little.”
  • “Well, then, you shall have plenty of it; and first, I see you’ve not
  • much more sense than some others of my acquaintance” (indicating me
  • with his thumb), “or else you’d never turn rabid about that dirty little
  • country called England; for rabid, I see you are; I read Anglophobia in
  • your looks, and hear it in your words. Why, mademoiselle, is it possible
  • that anybody with a grain of rationality should feel enthusiasm about a
  • mere name, and that name England? I thought you were a lady-abbess five
  • minutes ago, and respected you accordingly; and now I see you are a sort
  • of Swiss sibyl, with high Tory and high Church principles!”
  • “England is your country?” asked Frances.
  • “Yes.”
  • “And you don’t like it?”
  • “I’d be sorry to like it! A little corrupt, venal, lord-and-king-cursed
  • nation, full of mucky pride (as they say in ----shire), and helpless
  • pauperism; rotten with abuses, worm-eaten with prejudices!”
  • “You might say so of almost every state; there are abuses and prejudices
  • everywhere, and I thought fewer in England than in other countries.”
  • “Come to England and see. Come to Birmingham and Manchester; come to St.
  • Giles’ in London, and get a practical notion of how our system works.
  • Examine the footprints of our august aristocracy; see how they walk
  • in blood, crushing hearts as they go. Just put your head in at English
  • cottage doors; get a glimpse of Famine crouched torpid on black
  • hearthstones; of Disease lying bare on beds without coverlets, of
  • Infamy wantoning viciously with Ignorance, though indeed Luxury is her
  • favourite paramour, and princely halls are dearer to her than thatched
  • hovels----”
  • “I was not thinking of the wretchedness and vice in England; I was
  • thinking of the good side--of what is elevated in your character as a
  • nation.”
  • “There is no good side--none at least of which you can have any
  • knowledge; for you cannot appreciate the efforts of industry, the
  • achievements of enterprise, or the discoveries of science: narrowness
  • of education and obscurity of position quite incapacitate you
  • from understanding these points; and as to historical and poetical
  • associations, I will not insult you, mademoiselle, by supposing that you
  • alluded to such humbug.”
  • “But I did partly.”
  • Hunsden laughed--his laugh of unmitigated scorn.
  • “I did, Mr. Hunsden. Are you of the number of those to whom such
  • associations give no pleasure?”
  • “Mademoiselle, what is an association? I never saw one. What is its
  • length, breadth, weight, value--ay, VALUE? What price will it bring in
  • the market?”
  • “Your portrait, to any one who loved you, would, for the sake of
  • association, be without price.”
  • That inscrutable Hunsden heard this remark and felt it rather acutely,
  • too, somewhere; for he coloured--a thing not unusual with him, when hit
  • unawares on a tender point. A sort of trouble momentarily darkened
  • his eye, and I believe he filled up the transient pause succeeding his
  • antagonist’s home-thrust, by a wish that some one did love him as
  • he would like to be loved--some one whose love he could unreservedly
  • return.
  • The lady pursued her temporary advantage.
  • “If your world is a world without associations, Mr. Hunsden, I no longer
  • wonder that you hate England so. I don’t clearly know what Paradise is,
  • and what angels are; yet taking it to be the most glorious region I can
  • conceive, and angels the most elevated existences--if one of them--if
  • Abdiel the Faithful himself” (she was thinking of Milton) “were suddenly
  • stripped of the faculty of association, I think he would soon rush forth
  • from ‘the ever-during gates,’ leave heaven, and seek what he had lost in
  • hell. Yes, in the very hell from which he turned ‘with retorted scorn.’”
  • Frances’ tone in saying this was as marked as her language, and it
  • was when the word “hell” twanged off from her lips, with a somewhat
  • startling emphasis, that Hunsden deigned to bestow one slight glance of
  • admiration. He liked something strong, whether in man or woman; he liked
  • whatever dared to clear conventional limits. He had never before heard
  • a lady say “hell” with that uncompromising sort of accent, and the sound
  • pleased him from a lady’s lips; he would fain have had Frances to strike
  • the string again, but it was not in her way. The display of eccentric
  • vigour never gave her pleasure, and it only sounded in her voice or
  • flashed in her countenance when extraordinary circumstances--and those
  • generally painful--forced it out of the depths where it burned latent.
  • To me, once or twice, she had in intimate conversation, uttered
  • venturous thoughts in nervous language; but when the hour of such
  • manifestation was past, I could not recall it; it came of itself and of
  • itself departed. Hunsden’s excitations she put by soon with a smile, and
  • recurring to the theme of disputation, said--
  • “Since England is nothing, why do the continental nations respect her
  • so?”
  • “I should have thought no child would have asked that question,” replied
  • Hunsden, who never at any time gave information without reproving for
  • stupidity those who asked it of him. “If you had been my pupil, as I
  • suppose you once had the misfortune to be that of a deplorable character
  • not a hundred miles off, I would have put you in the corner for such a
  • confession of ignorance. Why, mademoiselle, can’t you see that it is
  • our GOLD which buys us French politeness, German good-will, and Swiss
  • servility?” And he sneered diabolically.
  • “Swiss?” said Frances, catching the word “servility.” “Do you call my
  • countrymen servile?” and she started up. I could not suppress a low
  • laugh; there was ire in her glance and defiance in her attitude. “Do
  • you abuse Switzerland to me, Mr. Hunsden? Do you think I have no
  • associations? Do you calculate that I am prepared to dwell only on what
  • vice and degradation may be found in Alpine villages, and to leave
  • quite out of my heart the social greatness of my countrymen, and our
  • blood-earned freedom, and the natural glories of our mountains? You’re
  • mistaken--you’re mistaken.”
  • “Social greatness? Call it what you will, your countrymen are sensible
  • fellows; they make a marketable article of what to you is an abstract
  • idea; they have, ere this, sold their social greatness and also their
  • blood-earned freedom to be the servants of foreign kings.”
  • “You never were in Switzerland?”
  • “Yes--I have been there twice.”
  • “You know nothing of it.”
  • “I do.”
  • “And you say the Swiss are mercenary, as a parrot says ‘Poor Poll,’ or
  • as the Belgians here say the English are not brave, or as the French
  • accuse them of being perfidious: there is no justice in your dictums.”
  • “There is truth.”
  • “I tell you, Mr. Hunsden, you are a more unpractical man than I am an
  • unpractical woman, for you don’t acknowledge what really exists; you
  • want to annihilate individual patriotism and national greatness as
  • an atheist would annihilate God and his own soul, by denying their
  • existence.”
  • “Where are you flying to? You are off at a tangent--I thought we were
  • talking about the mercenary nature of the Swiss.”
  • “We were--and if you proved to me that the Swiss are mercenary to-morrow
  • (which you cannot do) I should love Switzerland still.”
  • “You would be mad, then--mad as a March hare--to indulge in a passion
  • for millions of shiploads of soil, timber, snow, and ice.”
  • “Not so mad as you who love nothing.”
  • “There’s a method in my madness; there’s none in yours.”
  • “Your method is to squeeze the sap out of creation and make manure of
  • the refuse, by way of turning it to what you call use.”
  • “You cannot reason at all,” said Hunsden; “there is no logic in you.”
  • “Better to be without logic than without feeling,” retorted Frances, who
  • was now passing backwards and forwards from her cupboard to the table,
  • intent, if not on hospitable thoughts, at least on hospitable deeds, for
  • she was laying the cloth, and putting plates, knives and forks thereon.
  • “Is that a hit at me, mademoiselle? Do you suppose I am without
  • feeling?”
  • “I suppose you are always interfering with your own feelings, and those
  • of other people, and dogmatizing about the irrationality of this, that,
  • and the other sentiment, and then ordering it to be suppressed because
  • you imagine it to be inconsistent with logic.”
  • “I do right.”
  • Frances had stepped out of sight into a sort of little pantry; she soon
  • reappeared.
  • “You do right? Indeed, no! You are much mistaken if you think so. Just
  • be so good as to let me get to the fire, Mr. Hunsden; I have something
  • to cook.” (An interval occupied in settling a casserole on the fire;
  • then, while she stirred its contents:) “Right! as if it were right to
  • crush any pleasurable sentiment that God has given to man, especially
  • any sentiment that, like patriotism, spreads man’s selfishness in wider
  • circles” (fire stirred, dish put down before it).
  • “Were you born in Switzerland?”
  • “I should think so, or else why should I call it my country?”
  • “And where did you get your English features and figure?”
  • “I am English, too; half the blood in my veins is English; thus I have
  • a right to a double power of patriotism, possessing an interest in two
  • noble, free, and fortunate countries.”
  • “You had an English mother?”
  • “Yes, yes; and you, I suppose, had a mother from the moon or from
  • Utopia, since not a nation in Europe has a claim on your interest?”
  • “On the contrary, I’m a universal patriot, if you could understand me
  • rightly: my country is the world.”
  • “Sympathies so widely diffused must be very shallow: will you have
  • the goodness to come to table. Monsieur” (to me who appeared to be now
  • absorbed in reading by moonlight)--“Monsieur, supper is served.”
  • This was said in quite a different voice to that in which she had been
  • bandying phrases with Mr. Hunsden--not so short, graver and softer.
  • “Frances, what do you mean by preparing, supper? we had no intention of
  • staying.”
  • “Ah, monsieur, but you have stayed, and supper is prepared; you have
  • only the alternative of eating it.”
  • The meal was a foreign one, of course; it consisted in two small but
  • tasty dishes of meat prepared with skill and served with nicety; a salad
  • and “fromage francais,” completed it. The business of eating interposed
  • a brief truce between the belligerents, but no sooner was supper
  • disposed of than they were at it again. The fresh subject of dispute
  • ran on the spirit of religious intolerance which Mr. Hunsden affirmed to
  • exist strongly in Switzerland, notwithstanding the professed attachment
  • of the Swiss to freedom. Here Frances had greatly the worst of it,
  • not only because she was unskilled to argue, but because her own real
  • opinions on the point in question happened to coincide pretty nearly
  • with Mr. Hunsden’s, and she only contradicted him out of opposition. At
  • last she gave in, confessing that she thought as he thought, but bidding
  • him take notice that she did not consider herself beaten.
  • “No more did the French at Waterloo,” said Hunsden.
  • “There is no comparison between the cases,” rejoined Frances; “mine was
  • a sham fight.”
  • “Sham or real, it’s up with you.”
  • “No; though I have neither logic nor wealth of words, yet in a case
  • where my opinion really differed from yours, I would adhere to it when
  • I had not another word to say in its defence; you should be baffled by
  • dumb determination. You speak of Waterloo; your Wellington ought to have
  • been conquered there, according to Napoleon; but he persevered in spite
  • of the laws of war, and was victorious in defiance of military tactics.
  • I would do as he did.”
  • “I’ll be bound for it you would; probably you have some of the same sort
  • of stubborn stuff in you.”
  • “I should be sorry if I had not; he and Tell were brothers, and I’d
  • scorn the Swiss, man or woman, who had none of the much-enduring nature
  • of our heroic William in his soul.”
  • “If Tell was like Wellington, he was an ass.”
  • “Does not ASS mean BAUDET?” asked Frances, turning to me.
  • “No, no,” replied I, “it means an ESPRIT-FORT; and now,” I continued, as
  • I saw that fresh occasion of strife was brewing between these two, “it
  • is high time to go.”
  • Hunsden rose. “Good bye,” said he to Frances; “I shall be off for this
  • glorious England to-morrow, and it may be twelve months or more before
  • I come to Brussels again; whenever I do come I’ll seek you out, and
  • you shall see if I don’t find means to make you fiercer than a dragon.
  • You’ve done pretty well this evening, but next interview you shall
  • challenge me outright. Meantime you’re doomed to become Mrs. William
  • Crimsworth, I suppose; poor young lady? but you have a spark of spirit;
  • cherish it, and give the Professor the full benefit thereof.”
  • “Are you married. Mr. Hunsden?” asked Frances, suddenly.
  • “No. I should have thought you might have guessed I was a Benedict by my
  • look.”
  • “Well, whenever you marry don’t take a wife out of Switzerland; for if
  • you begin blaspheming Helvetia, and cursing the cantons--above all, if
  • you mention the word ASS in the same breath with the name Tell (for
  • ass IS baudet, I know; though Monsieur is pleased to translate
  • it ESPRIT-FORT) your mountain maid will some night smother her
  • Breton-bretonnant, even as your own Shakspeare’s Othello smothered
  • Desdemona.”
  • “I am warned,” said Hunsden; “and so are you, lad,” (nodding to me). “I
  • hope yet to hear of a travesty of the Moor and his gentle lady, in which
  • the parts shall be reversed according to the plan just sketched--you,
  • however, being in my nightcap. Farewell, mademoiselle!” He bowed on her
  • hand, absolutely like Sir Charles Grandison on that of Harriet Byron;
  • adding--“Death from such fingers would not be without charms.”
  • “Mon Dieu!” murmured Frances, opening her large eyes and lifting her
  • distinctly arched brows; “c’est qu’il fait des compliments! je ne m’y
  • suis pas attendu.” She smiled, half in ire, half in mirth, curtsied with
  • foreign grace, and so they parted.
  • No sooner had we got into the street than Hunsden collared me.
  • “And that is your lace-mender?” said he; “and you reckon you have done
  • a fine, magnanimous thing in offering to marry her? You, a scion of
  • Seacombe, have proved your disdain of social distinctions by taking up
  • with an ouvriere! And I pitied the fellow, thinking his feelings had
  • misled him, and that he had hurt himself by contracting a low match!”
  • “Just let go my collar, Hunsden.”
  • On the contrary, he swayed me to and fro; so I grappled him round the
  • waist. It was dark; the street lonely and lampless. We had then a
  • tug for it; and after we had both rolled on the pavement, and with
  • difficulty picked ourselves up, we agreed to walk on more soberly.
  • “Yes, that’s my lace-mender,” said I; “and she is to be mine for
  • life--God willing.”
  • “God is not willing--you can’t suppose it; what business have you to
  • be suited so well with a partner? And she treats you with a sort of
  • respect, too, and says, ‘Monsieur’ and modulates her tone in addressing
  • you, actually, as if you were something superior! She could not evince
  • more deference to such a one as I, were she favoured by fortune to the
  • supreme extent of being my choice instead of yours.”
  • “Hunsden, you’re a puppy. But you’ve only seen the title-page of my
  • happiness; you don’t know the tale that follows; you cannot conceive the
  • interest and sweet variety and thrilling excitement of the narrative.”
  • Hunsden--speaking low and deep, for we had now entered a busier
  • street--desired me to hold my peace, threatening to do something
  • dreadful if I stimulated his wrath further by boasting. I laughed till
  • my sides ached. We soon reached his hotel; before he entered it, he
  • said--
  • “Don’t be vainglorious. Your lace-mender is too good for you, but not
  • good enough for me; neither physically nor morally does she come up
  • to my ideal of a woman. No; I dream of something far beyond that
  • pale-faced, excitable little Helvetian (by-the-by she has infinitely
  • more of the nervous, mobile Parisienne in her than of the the robust
  • ‘jungfrau’). Your Mdlle. Henri is in person “chetive”, in mind “sans
  • caractere”, compared with the queen of my visions. You, indeed, may put
  • up with that “minois chiffone”; but when I marry I must have straighter
  • and more harmonious features, to say nothing of a nobler and better
  • developed shape than that perverse, ill-thriven child can boast.”
  • “Bribe a seraph to fetch you a coal of fire from heaven, if you will,”
  • said I, “and with it kindle life in the tallest, fattest, most boneless,
  • fullest-blooded of Ruben’s painted women--leave me only my Alpine peri,
  • and I’ll not envy you.”
  • With a simultaneous movement, each turned his back on the other. Neither
  • said “God bless you;” yet on the morrow the sea was to roll between us.
  • CHAPTER XXV.
  • IN two months more Frances had fulfilled the time of mourning for her
  • aunt. One January morning--the first of the new year holidays--I went in
  • a fiacre, accompanied only by M. Vandenhuten, to the Rue Notre Dame aux
  • Neiges, and having alighted alone and walked upstairs, I found Frances
  • apparently waiting for me, dressed in a style scarcely appropriate to
  • that cold, bright, frosty day. Never till now had I seen her attired in
  • any other than black or sad-coloured stuff; and there she stood by the
  • window, clad all in white, and white of a most diaphanous texture; her
  • array was very simple, to be sure, but it looked imposing and festal
  • because it was so clear, full, and floating; a veil shadowed her head,
  • and hung below her knee; a little wreath of pink flowers fastened it
  • to her thickly tressed Grecian plait, and thence it fell softly on each
  • side of her face. Singular to state, she was, or had been crying; when
  • I asked her if she were ready, she said “Yes, monsieur,” with something
  • very like a checked sob; and when I took a shawl, which lay on the
  • table, and folded it round her, not only did tear after tear course
  • unbidden down her cheek, but she shook to my ministration like a reed.
  • I said I was sorry to see her in such low spirits, and requested to
  • be allowed an insight into the origin thereof. She only said, “It was
  • impossible to help it,” and then voluntarily, though hurriedly, putting
  • her hand into mine, accompanied me out of the room, and ran downstairs
  • with a quick, uncertain step, like one who was eager to get some
  • formidable piece of business over. I put her into the fiacre. M.
  • Vandenhuten received her, and seated her beside himself; we drove all
  • together to the Protestant chapel, went through a certain service in the
  • Common Prayer Book, and she and I came out married. M. Vandenhuten had
  • given the bride away.
  • We took no bridal trip; our modesty, screened by the peaceful obscurity
  • of our station, and the pleasant isolation of our circumstances, did not
  • exact that additional precaution. We repaired at once to a small house
  • I had taken in the faubourg nearest to that part of the city where the
  • scene of our avocations lay.
  • Three or four hours after the wedding ceremony, Frances, divested of her
  • bridal snow, and attired in a pretty lilac gown of warmer materials,
  • a piquant black silk apron, and a lace collar with some finishing
  • decoration of lilac ribbon, was kneeling on the carpet of a neatly
  • furnished though not spacious parlour, arranging on the shelves of a
  • chiffoniere some books, which I handed to her from the table. It was
  • snowing fast out of doors; the afternoon had turned out wild and
  • cold; the leaden sky seemed full of drifts, and the street was already
  • ankle-deep in the white downfall. Our fire burned bright, our new
  • habitation looked brilliantly clean and fresh, the furniture was all
  • arranged, and there were but some articles of glass, china, books,
  • &c., to put in order. Frances found in this business occupation till
  • tea-time, and then, after I had distinctly instructed her how to make
  • a cup of tea in rational English style, and after she had got over the
  • dismay occasioned by seeing such an extravagant amount of material put
  • into the pot, she administered to me a proper British repast, at which
  • there wanted neither candles nor urn, firelight nor comfort.
  • Our week’s holiday glided by, and we readdressed ourselves to labour.
  • Both my wife and I began in good earnest with the notion that we were
  • working people, destined to earn our bread by exertion, and that of the
  • most assiduous kind. Our days were thoroughly occupied; we used to part
  • every morning at eight o’clock, and not meet again till five P.M.; but
  • into what sweet rest did the turmoil of each busy day decline! Looking
  • down the vista of memory, I see the evenings passed in that little
  • parlour like a long string of rubies circling the dusky brow of the past.
  • Unvaried were they as each cut gem, and like each gem brilliant and
  • burning.
  • A year and a half passed. One morning (it was a FETE, and we had the day
  • to ourselves) Frances said to me, with a suddenness peculiar to her when
  • she had been thinking long on a subject, and at last, having come to
  • a conclusion, wished to test its soundness by the touchstone of my
  • judgment:--
  • “I don’t work enough.”
  • “What now?” demanded I, looking up from my coffee, which I had been
  • deliberately stirring while enjoying, in anticipation, a walk I proposed
  • to take with Frances, that fine summer day (it was June), to a certain
  • farmhouse in the country, where we were to dine. “What now?” and I
  • saw at once, in the serious ardour of her face, a project of vital
  • importance.
  • “I am not satisfied,” returned she: “you are now earning eight thousand
  • francs a year” (it was true; my efforts, punctuality, the fame of my
  • pupils’ progress, the publicity of my station, had so far helped me
  • on), “while I am still at my miserable twelve hundred francs. I CAN do
  • better, and I WILL.”
  • “You work as long and as diligently as I do, Frances.”
  • “Yes, monsieur, but I am not working in the right way, and I am
  • convinced of it.”
  • “You wish to change--you have a plan for progress in your mind; go and
  • put on your bonnet; and, while we take our walk, you shall tell me of
  • it.”
  • “Yes, monsieur.”
  • She went--as docile as a well-trained child; she was a curious mixture
  • of tractability and firmness: I sat thinking about her, and wondering
  • what her plan could be, when she re-entered.
  • “Monsieur, I have given Minnie” (our bonne) “leave to go out too, as it
  • is so very fine; so will you be kind enough to lock the door, and take
  • the key with you?”
  • “Kiss me, Mrs. Crimsworth,” was my not very apposite reply; but she
  • looked so engaging in her light summer dress and little cottage bonnet,
  • and her manner in speaking to me was then, as always, so unaffectedly
  • and suavely respectful, that my heart expanded at the sight of her, and
  • a kiss seemed necessary to content its importunity.
  • “There, monsieur.”
  • “Why do you always call me ‘Monsieur’? Say, ‘William.’”
  • “I cannot pronounce your W; besides, ‘Monsieur’ belongs to you; I like
  • it best.”
  • Minnie having departed in clean cap and smart shawl, we, too, set out,
  • leaving the house solitary and silent--silent, at least, but for
  • the ticking of the clock. We were soon clear of Brussels; the fields
  • received us, and then the lanes, remote from carriage-resounding
  • CHAUSSEES. Ere long we came upon a nook, so rural, green, and secluded,
  • it might have been a spot in some pastoral English province; a bank of
  • short and mossy grass, under a hawthorn, offered a seat too tempting
  • to be declined; we took it, and when we had admired and examined some
  • English-looking wild-flowers growing at our feet, I recalled Frances’
  • attention and my own to the topic touched on at breakfast.
  • “What was her plan?” A natural one--the next step to be mounted by
  • us, or, at least, by her, if she wanted to rise in her profession. She
  • proposed to begin a school. We already had the means for commencing on
  • a careful scale, having lived greatly within our income. We possessed,
  • too, by this time, an extensive and eligible connection, in the sense
  • advantageous to our business; for, though our circle of visiting
  • acquaintance continued as limited as ever, we were now widely known in
  • schools and families as teachers. When Frances had developed her plan,
  • she intimated, in some closing sentences, her hopes for the future. If
  • we only had good health and tolerable success, me might, she was sure,
  • in time realize an independency; and that, perhaps, before we were too
  • old to enjoy it; then both she and I would rest; and what was to hinder
  • us from going to live in England? England was still her Promised Land.
  • I put no obstacle in her way; raised no objection; I knew she was
  • not one who could live quiescent and inactive, or even comparatively
  • inactive. Duties she must have to fulfil, and important duties; work to
  • do--and exciting, absorbing, profitable work; strong faculties stirred
  • in her frame, and they demanded full nourishment, free exercise: mine
  • was not the hand ever to starve or cramp them; no, I delighted in
  • offering them sustenance, and in clearing them wider space for action.
  • “You have conceived a plan, Frances,” said I, “and a good plan; execute
  • it; you have my free consent, and wherever and whenever my assistance is
  • wanted, ask and you shall have.”
  • Frances’ eyes thanked me almost with tears; just a sparkle or two, soon
  • brushed away; she possessed herself of my hand too, and held it for
  • some time very close clasped in both her own, but she said no more than
  • “Thank you, monsieur.”
  • We passed a divine day, and came home late, lighted by a full summer
  • moon.
  • Ten years rushed now upon me with dusty, vibrating, unresting wings;
  • years of bustle, action, unslacked endeavour; years in which I and
  • my wife, having launched ourselves in the full career of progress, as
  • progress whirls on in European capitals, scarcely knew repose, were
  • strangers to amusement, never thought of indulgence, and yet, as
  • our course ran side by side, as we marched hand in hand, we neither
  • murmured, repented, nor faltered. Hope indeed cheered us; health kept us
  • up; harmony of thought and deed smoothed many difficulties, and finally,
  • success bestowed every now and then encouraging reward on diligence. Our
  • school became one of the most popular in Brussels, and as by degrees
  • we raised our terms and elevated our system of education, our choice of
  • pupils grew more select, and at length included the children of the
  • best families in Belgium. We had too an excellent connection in England,
  • first opened by the unsolicited recommendation of Mr. Hunsden, who
  • having been over, and having abused me for my prosperity in set terms,
  • went back, and soon after sent a leash of young ----shire heiresses--his
  • cousins; as he said “to be polished off by Mrs. Crimsworth.”
  • As to this same Mrs. Crimsworth, in one sense she was become another
  • woman, though in another she remained unchanged. So different was
  • she under different circumstances. I seemed to possess two wives. The
  • faculties of her nature, already disclosed when I married her, remained
  • fresh and fair; but other faculties shot up strong, branched out
  • broad, and quite altered the external character of the plant. Firmness,
  • activity, and enterprise, covered with grave foliage, poetic feeling
  • and fervour; but these flowers were still there, preserved pure and dewy
  • under the umbrage of later growth and hardier nature: perhaps I only in
  • the world knew the secret of their existence, but to me they were ever
  • ready to yield an exquisite fragrance and present a beauty as chaste as
  • radiant.
  • In the daytime my house and establishment were conducted by Madame the
  • directress, a stately and elegant woman, bearing much anxious thought on
  • her large brow; much calculated dignity in her serious mien: immediately
  • after breakfast I used to part with this lady; I went to my college,
  • she to her schoolroom; returning for an hour in the course of the day,
  • I found her always in class, intently occupied; silence, industry,
  • observance, attending on her presence. When not actually teaching,
  • she was overlooking and guiding by eye and gesture; she then appeared
  • vigilant and solicitous. When communicating instruction, her aspect was
  • more animated; she seemed to feel a certain enjoyment in the occupation.
  • The language in which she addressed her pupils, though simple and
  • unpretending, was never trite or dry; she did not speak from routine
  • formulas--she made her own phrases as she went on, and very nervous
  • and impressive phrases they frequently were; often, when elucidating
  • favourite points of history, or geography, she would wax genuinely
  • eloquent in her earnestness. Her pupils, or at least the elder and more
  • intelligent amongst them, recognized well the language of a superior
  • mind; they felt too, and some of them received the impression of
  • elevated sentiments; there was little fondling between mistress and
  • girls, but some of Frances’ pupils in time learnt to love her sincerely,
  • all of them beheld her with respect; her general demeanour towards
  • them was serious; sometimes benignant when they pleased her with their
  • progress and attention, always scrupulously refined and considerate.
  • In cases where reproof or punishment was called for she was usually
  • forbearing enough; but if any took advantage of that forbearance, which
  • sometimes happened, a sharp, sudden and lightning-like severity taught
  • the culprit the extent of the mistake committed. Sometimes a gleam of
  • tenderness softened her eyes and manner, but this was rare; only when
  • a pupil was sick, or when it pined after home, or in the case of some
  • little motherless child, or of one much poorer than its companions,
  • whose scanty wardrobe and mean appointments brought on it the contempt
  • of the jewelled young countesses and silk-clad misses. Over such feeble
  • fledglings the directress spread a wing of kindliest protection: it was
  • to their bedside she came at night to tuck them warmly in; it was after
  • them she looked in winter to see that they always had a comfortable seat
  • by the stove; it was they who by turns were summoned to the salon to
  • receive some little dole of cake or fruit--to sit on a footstool at
  • the fireside--to enjoy home comforts, and almost home liberty, for
  • an evening together--to be spoken to gently and softly, comforted,
  • encouraged, cherished--and when bedtime came, dismissed with a kiss
  • of true tenderness. As to Julia and Georgiana G----, daughters of an
  • English baronet, as to Mdlle. Mathilde de ----, heiress of a Belgian
  • count, and sundry other children of patrician race, the directress was
  • careful of them as of the others, anxious for their progress, as for
  • that of the rest--but it never seemed to enter her head to distinguish
  • them by a mark of preference; one girl of noble blood she loved
  • dearly--a young Irish baroness--lady Catherine ----; but it was for her
  • enthusiastic heart and clever head, for her generosity and her genius,
  • the title and rank went for nothing.
  • My afternoons were spent also in college, with the exception of an hour
  • that my wife daily exacted of me for her establishment, and with which
  • she would not dispense. She said that I must spend that time amongst her
  • pupils to learn their characters, to be AU COURANT with everything that
  • was passing in the house, to become interested in what interested her,
  • to be able to give her my opinion on knotty points when she required it,
  • and this she did constantly, never allowing my interest in the pupils
  • to fall asleep, and never making any change of importance without
  • my cognizance and consent. She delighted to sit by me when I gave my
  • lessons (lessons in literature), her hands folded on her knee, the most
  • fixedly attentive of any present. She rarely addressed me in class; when
  • she did it was with an air of marked deference; it was her pleasure, her
  • joy to make me still the master in all things.
  • At six o’clock P.M. my daily labours ceased. I then came home, for
  • my home was my heaven; ever at that hour, as I entered our private
  • sitting-room, the lady-directress vanished from before my eyes, and
  • Frances Henri, my own little lace-mender, was magically restored to my
  • arms; much disappointed she would have been if her master had not been
  • as constant to the tryst as herself, and if his truthfull kiss had not
  • been prompt to answer her soft, “Bon soir, monsieur.”
  • Talk French to me she would, and many a punishment she has had for
  • her wilfulness. I fear the choice of chastisement must have been
  • injudicious, for instead of correcting the fault, it seemed to encourage
  • its renewal. Our evenings were our own; that recreation was necessary to
  • refresh our strength for the due discharge of our duties; sometimes we
  • spent them all in conversation, and my young Genevese, now that she was
  • thoroughly accustomed to her English professor, now that she loved
  • him too absolutely to fear him much, reposed in him a confidence so
  • unlimited that topics of conversation could no more be wanting with him
  • than subjects for communion with her own heart. In those moments, happy
  • as a bird with its mate, she would show me what she had of vivacity, of
  • mirth, of originality in her well-dowered nature. She would show, too,
  • some stores of raillery, of “malice,” and would vex, tease, pique me
  • sometimes about what she called my “bizarreries anglaises,” my “caprices
  • insulaires,” with a wild and witty wickedness that made a perfect white
  • demon of her while it lasted. This was rare, however, and the elfish
  • freak was always short: sometimes when driven a little hard in the war
  • of words--for her tongue did ample justice to the pith, the point, the
  • delicacy of her native French, in which language she always attacked
  • me--I used to turn upon her with my old decision, and arrest bodily the
  • sprite that teased me. Vain idea! no sooner had I grasped hand or arm
  • than the elf was gone; the provocative smile quenched in the expressive
  • brown eyes, and a ray of gentle homage shone under the lids in its
  • place. I had seized a mere vexing fairy, and found a submissive and
  • supplicating little mortal woman in my arms. Then I made her get a book,
  • and read English to me for an hour by way of penance. I frequently dosed
  • her with Wordsworth in this way, and Wordsworth steadied her soon; she
  • had a difficulty in comprehending his deep, serene, and sober mind; his
  • language, too, was not facile to her; she had to ask questions, to sue
  • for explanations, to be like a child and a novice, and to acknowledge
  • me as her senior and director. Her instinct instantly penetrated and
  • possessed the meaning of more ardent and imaginative writers. Byron
  • excited her; Scott she loved; Wordsworth only she puzzled at, wondered
  • over, and hesitated to pronounce an opinion upon.
  • But whether she read to me, or talked with me; whether she teased me
  • in French, or entreated me in English; whether she jested with wit,
  • or inquired with deference; narrated with interest, or listened with
  • attention; whether she smiled at me or on me, always at nine o’clock I
  • was left abandoned. She would extricate herself from my arms, quit
  • my side, take her lamp, and be gone. Her mission was upstairs; I have
  • followed her sometimes and watched her. First she opened the door of the
  • dortoir (the pupils’ chamber), noiselessly she glided up the long room
  • between the two rows of white beds, surveyed all the sleepers; if any
  • were wakeful, especially if any were sad, spoke to them and soothed
  • them; stood some minutes to ascertain that all was safe and tranquil;
  • trimmed the watch-light which burned in the apartment all night, then
  • withdrew, closing the door behind her without sound. Thence she glided
  • to our own chamber; it had a little cabinet within; this she sought;
  • there, too, appeared a bed, but one, and that a very small one; her face
  • (the night I followed and observed her) changed as she approached this
  • tiny couch; from grave it warmed to earnest; she shaded with one hand
  • the lamp she held in the other; she bent above the pillow and hung
  • over a child asleep; its slumber (that evening at least, and usually,
  • I believe) was sound and calm; no tear wet its dark eyelashes; no fever
  • heated its round cheek; no ill dream discomposed its budding features.
  • Frances gazed, she did not smile, and yet the deepest delight filled,
  • flushed her face; feeling pleasurable, powerful, worked in her whole
  • frame, which still was motionless. I saw, indeed, her heart heave, her
  • lips were a little apart, her breathing grew somewhat hurried; the child
  • smiled; then at last the mother smiled too, and said in low soliloquy,
  • “God bless my little son!” She stooped closer over him, breathed the
  • softest of kisses on his brow, covered his minute hand with hers, and
  • at last started up and came away. I regained the parlour before her.
  • Entering it two minutes later she said quietly as she put down her
  • extinguished lamp--
  • “Victor rests well: he smiled in his sleep; he has your smile,
  • monsieur.”
  • The said Victor was of course her own boy, born in the third year of
  • our marriage: his Christian name had been given him in honour of M.
  • Vandenhuten, who continued always our trusty and well-beloved friend.
  • Frances was then a good and dear wife to me, because I was to her a
  • good, just, and faithful husband. What she would have been had she
  • married a harsh, envious, careless man--a profligate, a prodigal,
  • a drunkard, or a tyrant--is another question, and one which I once
  • propounded to her. Her answer, given after some reflection, was--
  • “I should have tried to endure the evil or cure it for awhile; and when
  • I found it intolerable and incurable, I should have left my torturer
  • suddenly and silently.”
  • “And if law or might had forced you back again?”
  • “What, to a drunkard, a profligate, a selfish spendthrift, an unjust
  • fool?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “I would have gone back; again assured myself whether or not his vice
  • and my misery were capable of remedy; and if not, have left him again.”
  • “And if again forced to return, and compelled to abide?”
  • “I don’t know,” she said, hastily. “Why do you ask me, monsieur?”
  • I would have an answer, because I saw a strange kind of spirit in her
  • eye, whose voice I determined to waken.
  • “Monsieur, if a wife’s nature loathes that of the man she is wedded to,
  • marriage must be slavery. Against slavery all right thinkers revolt, and
  • though torture be the price of resistance, torture must be dared: though
  • the only road to freedom lie through the gates of death, those gates
  • must be passed; for freedom is indispensable. Then, monsieur, I would
  • resist as far as my strength permitted; when that strength failed I
  • should be sure of a refuge. Death would certainly screen me both from
  • bad laws and their consequences.”
  • “Voluntary death, Frances?”
  • “No, monsieur. I’d have courage to live out every throe of anguish fate
  • assigned me, and principle to contend for justice and liberty to the
  • last.”
  • “I see you would have made no patient Grizzle. And now, supposing fate
  • had merely assigned you the lot of an old maid, what then? How would you
  • have liked celibacy?”
  • “Not much, certainly. An old maid’s life must doubtless be void and
  • vapid--her heart strained and empty. Had I been an old maid I should
  • have spent existence in efforts to fill the void and ease the aching. I
  • should have probably failed, and died weary and disappointed, despised
  • and of no account, like other single women. But I’m not an old maid,”
  • she added quickly. “I should have been, though, but for my master. I
  • should never have suited any man but Professor Crimsworth--no other
  • gentleman, French, English, or Belgian, would have thought me amiable or
  • handsome; and I doubt whether I should have cared for the approbation
  • of many others, if I could have obtained it. Now, I have been Professor
  • Crimsworth’s wife eight years, and what is he in my eyes? Is he
  • honourable, beloved ----?” She stopped, her voice was cut off, her eyes
  • suddenly suffused. She and I were standing side by side; she threw her
  • arms round me, and strained me to her heart with passionate earnestness:
  • the energy of her whole being glowed in her dark and then dilated
  • eye, and crimsoned her animated cheek; her look and movement were like
  • inspiration; in one there was such a flash, in the other such a power.
  • Half an hour afterwards, when she had become calm, I asked where all
  • that wild vigour was gone which had transformed her ere-while and made
  • her glance so thrilling and ardent--her action so rapid and strong. She
  • looked down, smiling softly and passively:--
  • “I cannot tell where it is gone, monsieur,” said she, “but I know that,
  • whenever it is wanted, it will come back again.”
  • Behold us now at the close of the ten years, and we have realized an
  • independency. The rapidity with which we attained this end had its
  • origin in three reasons:-- Firstly, we worked so hard for it; secondly,
  • we had no incumbrances to delay success; thirdly, as soon as we had
  • capital to invest, two well-skilled counsellors, one in Belgium, one in
  • England, viz. Vandenhuten and Hunsden, gave us each a word of advice
  • as to the sort of investment to be chosen. The suggestion made was
  • judicious; and, being promptly acted on, the result proved gainful--I
  • need not say how gainful; I communicated details to Messrs. Vandenhuten
  • and Hunsden; nobody else can be interested in hearing them.
  • Accounts being wound up, and our professional connection disposed of, we
  • both agreed that, as mammon was not our master, nor his service that in
  • which we desired to spend our lives; as our desires were temperate, and
  • our habits unostentatious, we had now abundance to live on--abundance to
  • leave our boy; and should besides always have a balance on hand, which,
  • properly managed by right sympathy and unselfish activity, might
  • help philanthropy in her enterprises, and put solace into the hand of
  • charity.
  • To England we now resolved to take wing; we arrived there safely;
  • Frances realized the dream of her lifetime. We spent a whole summer
  • and autumn in travelling from end to end of the British islands, and
  • afterwards passed a winter in London. Then we thought it high time
  • to fix our residence. My heart yearned towards my native county of
  • ----shire; and it is in ----shire I now live; it is in the library of my
  • own home I am now writing. That home lies amid a sequestered and rather
  • hilly region, thirty miles removed from X----; a region whose verdure
  • the smoke of mills has not yet sullied, whose waters still run pure,
  • whose swells of moorland preserve in some ferny glens that lie between
  • them the very primal wildness of nature, her moss, her bracken, her
  • blue-bells, her scents of reed and heather, her free and fresh breezes.
  • My house is a picturesque and not too spacious dwelling, with low and
  • long windows, a trellised and leaf-veiled porch over the front door,
  • just now, on this summer evening, looking like an arch of roses and ivy.
  • The garden is chiefly laid out in lawn, formed of the sod of the hills,
  • with herbage short and soft as moss, full of its own peculiar flowers,
  • tiny and starlike, imbedded in the minute embroidery of their fine
  • foliage. At the bottom of the sloping garden there is a wicket, which
  • opens upon a lane as green as the lawn, very long, shady, and little
  • frequented; on the turf of this lane generally appear the first daisies
  • of spring--whence its name--Daisy Lane; serving also as a distinction to
  • the house.
  • It terminates (the lane I mean) in a valley full of wood; which
  • wood--chiefly oak and beech--spreads shadowy about the vicinage of a
  • very old mansion, one of the Elizabethan structures, much larger, as
  • well as more antique than Daisy Lane, the property and residence of
  • an individual familiar both to me and to the reader. Yes, in Hunsden
  • Wood--for so are those glades and that grey building, with many gables
  • and more chimneys, named--abides Yorke Hunsden, still unmarried; never,
  • I suppose, having yet found his ideal, though I know at least a score
  • of young ladies within a circuit of forty miles, who would be willing to
  • assist him in the search.
  • The estate fell to him by the death of his father, five years since; he
  • has given up trade, after having made by it sufficient to pay off some
  • incumbrances by which the family heritage was burdened. I say he abides
  • here, but I do not think he is resident above five months out of the
  • twelve; he wanders from land to land, and spends some part of each
  • winter in town: he frequently brings visitors with him when he comes to
  • ----shire, and these visitors are often foreigners; sometimes he has
  • a German metaphysician, sometimes a French savant; he had once a
  • dissatisfied and savage-looking Italian, who neither sang nor played,
  • and of whom Frances affirmed that he had “tout l’air d’un conspirateur.”
  • What English guests Hunsden invites, are all either men of Birmingham or
  • Manchester--hard men, seemingly knit up in one thought, whose talk is
  • of free trade. The foreign visitors, too, are politicians; they take a
  • wider theme--European progress--the spread of liberal sentiments over
  • the Continent; on their mental tablets, the names of Russia, Austria,
  • and the Pope, are inscribed in red ink. I have heard some of them talk
  • vigorous sense--yea, I have been present at polyglot discussions in the
  • old, oak-lined dining-room at Hunsden Wood, where a singular insight
  • was given of the sentiments entertained by resolute minds respecting old
  • northern despotisms, and old southern superstitions: also, I have heard
  • much twaddle, enounced chiefly in French and Deutsch, but let that pass.
  • Hunsden himself tolerated the drivelling theorists; with the practical
  • men he seemed leagued hand and heart.
  • When Hunsden is staying alone at the Wood (which seldom happens) he
  • generally finds his way two or three times a week to Daisy Lane. He has
  • a philanthropic motive for coming to smoke his cigar in our porch on
  • summer evenings; he says he does it to kill the earwigs amongst the
  • roses, with which insects, but for his benevolent fumigations, he
  • intimates we should certainly be overrun. On wet days, too, we are
  • almost sure to see him; according to him, it gets on time to work
  • me into lunacy by treading on my mental corns, or to force from Mrs.
  • Crimsworth revelations of the dragon within her, by insulting the memory
  • of Hofer and Tell.
  • We also go frequently to Hunsden Wood, and both I and Frances relish a
  • visit there highly. If there are other guests, their characters are
  • an interesting study; their conversation is exciting and strange; the
  • absence of all local narrowness both in the host and his chosen society
  • gives a metropolitan, almost a cosmopolitan freedom and largeness to the
  • talk. Hunsden himself is a polite man in his own house: he has, when he
  • chooses to employ it, an inexhaustible power of entertaining guests; his
  • very mansion too is interesting, the rooms look storied, the
  • passages legendary, the low-ceiled chambers, with their long rows of
  • diamond-paned lattices, have an old-world, haunted air: in his travels
  • he has collected stores of articles of VERTU, which are well and
  • tastefully disposed in his panelled or tapestried rooms: I have seen
  • there one or two pictures, and one or two pieces of statuary which many
  • an aristocratic connoisseur might have envied.
  • When I and Frances have dined and spent an evening with Hunsden, he
  • often walks home with us. His wood is large, and some of the timber
  • is old and of huge growth. There are winding ways in it which, pursued
  • through glade and brake, make the walk back to Daisy Lane a somewhat
  • long one. Many a time, when we have had the benefit of a full moon,
  • and when the night has been mild and balmy, when, moreover, a certain
  • nightingale has been singing, and a certain stream, hid in alders, has
  • lent the song a soft accompaniment, the remote church-bell of the one
  • hamlet in a district of ten miles, has tolled midnight ere the lord of
  • the wood left us at our porch. Free-flowing was his talk at such hours,
  • and far more quiet and gentle than in the day-time and before numbers.
  • He would then forget politics and discussion, and would dwell on the
  • past times of his house, on his family history, on himself and his own
  • feelings--subjects each and all invested with a peculiar zest, for they
  • were each and all unique. One glorious night in June, after I had been
  • taunting him about his ideal bride and asking him when she would
  • come and graft her foreign beauty on the old Hunsden oak, he answered
  • suddenly--
  • “You call her ideal; but see, here is her shadow; and there cannot be a
  • shadow without a substance.”
  • He had led us from the depth of the “winding way” into a glade from
  • whence the beeches withdrew, leaving it open to the sky; an unclouded
  • moon poured her light into this glade, and Hunsden held out under her
  • beam an ivory miniature.
  • Frances, with eagerness, examined it first; then she gave it to
  • me--still, however, pushing her little face close to mine, and seeking
  • in my eyes what I thought of the portrait. I thought it represented a
  • very handsome and very individual-looking female face, with, as he had
  • once said, “straight and harmonious features.” It was dark; the hair,
  • raven-black, swept not only from the brow, but from the temples--seemed
  • thrust away carelessly, as if such beauty dispensed with, nay,
  • despised arrangement. The Italian eye looked straight into you, and an
  • independent, determined eye it was; the mouth was as firm as fine; the
  • chin ditto. On the back of the miniature was gilded “Lucia.”
  • “That is a real head,” was my conclusion.
  • Hunsden smiled.
  • “I think so,” he replied. “All was real in Lucia.”
  • “And she was somebody you would have liked to marry--but could not?”
  • “I should certainly have liked to marry her, and that I HAVE not done so
  • is a proof that I COULD not.”
  • He repossessed himself of the miniature, now again in Frances’ hand, and
  • put it away.
  • “What do YOU think of it?” he asked of my wife, as he buttoned his coat
  • over it.
  • “I am sure Lucia once wore chains and broke them,” was the strange
  • answer. “I do not mean matrimonial chains,” she added, correcting
  • herself, as if she feared mis-interpretation, “but social chains of some
  • sort. The face is that of one who has made an effort, and a successful
  • and triumphant effort, to wrest some vigorous and valued faculty from
  • insupportable constraint; and when Lucia’s faculty got free, I am
  • certain it spread wide pinions and carried her higher than--” she
  • hesitated.
  • “Than what?” demanded Hunsden.
  • “Than ‘les convenances’ permitted you to follow.”
  • “I think you grow spiteful--impertinent.”
  • “Lucia has trodden the stage,” continued Frances. “You never seriously
  • thought of marrying her; you admired her originality, her fearlessness,
  • her energy of body and mind; you delighted in her talent, whatever that
  • was, whether song, dance, or dramatic representation; you worshipped her
  • beauty, which was of the sort after your own heart: but I am sure she
  • filled a sphere from whence you would never have thought of taking a
  • wife.”
  • “Ingenious,” remarked Hunsden; “whether true or not is another question.
  • Meantime, don’t you feel your little lamp of a spirit wax very pale,
  • beside such a girandole as Lucia’s?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Candid, at least; and the Professor will soon be dissatisfied with the
  • dim light you give?”
  • “Will you, monsieur?”
  • “My sight was always too weak to endure a blaze, Frances,” and we had
  • now reached the wicket.
  • I said, a few pages back, that this is a sweet summer evening; it
  • is--there has been a series of lovely days, and this is the loveliest;
  • the hay is just carried from my fields, its perfume still lingers in the
  • air. Frances proposed to me, an hour or two since, to take tea out
  • on the lawn; I see the round table, loaded with china, placed under a
  • certain beech; Hunsden is expected--nay, I hear he is come--there is his
  • voice, laying down the law on some point with authority; that of Frances
  • replies; she opposes him of course. They are disputing about Victor,
  • of whom Hunsden affirms that his mother is making a milksop. Mrs.
  • Crimsworth retaliates:--
  • “Better a thousand times he should be a milksop than what he, Hunsden,
  • calls ‘a fine lad;’ and moreover she says that if Hunsden were to become
  • a fixture in the neighbourhood, and were not a mere comet, coming and
  • going, no one knows how, when, where, or why, she should be quite uneasy
  • till she had got Victor away to a school at least a hundred miles off;
  • for that with his mutinous maxims and unpractical dogmas, he would ruin
  • a score of children.”
  • I have a word to say of Victor ere I shut this manuscript in my
  • desk--but it must be a brief one, for I hear the tinkle of silver on
  • porcelain.
  • Victor is as little of a pretty child as I am of a handsome man, or his
  • mother of a fine woman; he is pale and spare, with large eyes, as dark
  • as those of Frances, and as deeply set as mine. His shape is symmetrical
  • enough, but slight; his health is good. I never saw a child smile less
  • than he does, nor one who knits such a formidable brow when sitting over
  • a book that interests him, or while listening to tales of adventure,
  • peril, or wonder, narrated by his mother, Hunsden, or myself. But
  • though still, he is not unhappy--though serious, not morose; he has a
  • susceptibility to pleasurable sensations almost too keen, for it amounts
  • to enthusiasm. He learned to read in the old-fashioned way out of a
  • spelling-book at his mother’s knee, and as he got on without driving by
  • that method, she thought it unnecessary to buy him ivory letters, or to
  • try any of the other inducements to learning now deemed indispensable.
  • When he could read, he became a glutton of books, and is so still.
  • His toys have been few, and he has never wanted more. For those he
  • possesses, he seems to have contracted a partiality amounting to
  • affection; this feeling, directed towards one or two living animals of
  • the house, strengthens almost to a passion.
  • Mr. Hunsden gave him a mastiff cub, which he called Yorke, after the
  • donor; it grew to a superb dog, whose fierceness, however, was much
  • modified by the companionship and caresses of its young master. He would
  • go nowhere, do nothing without Yorke; Yorke lay at his feet while he
  • learned his lessons, played with him in the garden, walked with him in
  • the lane and wood, sat near his chair at meals, was fed always by his
  • own hand, was the first thing he sought in the morning, the last he left
  • at night. Yorke accompanied Mr. Hunsden one day to X----, and was bitten
  • in the street by a dog in a rabid state. As soon as Hunsden had brought
  • him home, and had informed me of the circumstance, I went into the yard
  • and shot him where he lay licking his wound: he was dead in an instant;
  • he had not seen me level the gun; I stood behind him. I had scarcely
  • been ten minutes in the house, when my ear was struck with sounds of
  • anguish: I repaired to the yard once more, for they proceeded thence.
  • Victor was kneeling beside his dead mastiff, bent over it, embracing its
  • bull-like neck, and lost in a passion of the wildest woe: he saw me.
  • “Oh, papa, I’ll never forgive you! I’ll never forgive you!” was his
  • exclamation. “You shot Yorke--I saw it from the window. I never believed
  • you could be so cruel--I can love you no more!”
  • I had much ado to explain to him, with a steady voice, the stern
  • necessity of the deed; he still, with that inconsolable and bitter
  • accent which I cannot render, but which pierced my heart, repeated--
  • “He might have been cured--you should have tried--you should have burnt
  • the wound with a hot iron, or covered it with caustic. You gave no time;
  • and now it is too late--he is dead!”
  • He sank fairly down on the senseless carcase; I waited patiently a long
  • while, till his grief had somewhat exhausted him; and then I lifted him
  • in my arms and carried him to his mother, sure that she would comfort
  • him best. She had witnessed the whole scene from a window; she would not
  • come out for fear of increasing my difficulties by her emotion, but she
  • was ready now to receive him. She took him to her kind heart, and on
  • to her gentle lap; consoled him but with her lips, her eyes, her soft
  • embrace, for some time; and then, when his sobs diminished, told him
  • that Yorke had felt no pain in dying, and that if he had been left to
  • expire naturally, his end would have been most horrible; above all, she
  • told him that I was not cruel (for that idea seemed to give exquisite
  • pain to poor Victor), that it was my affection for Yorke and him which
  • had made me act so, and that I was now almost heart-broken to see him
  • weep thus bitterly.
  • Victor would have been no true son of his father, had these
  • considerations, these reasons, breathed in so low, so sweet a
  • tone--married to caresses so benign, so tender--to looks so inspired
  • with pitying sympathy--produced no effect on him. They did produce an
  • effect: he grew calmer, rested his face on her shoulder, and lay still
  • in her arms. Looking up, shortly, he asked his mother to tell him over
  • again what she had said about Yorke having suffered no pain, and my not
  • being cruel; the balmy words being repeated, he again pillowed his cheek
  • on her breast, and was again tranquil.
  • Some hours after, he came to me in my library, asked if I forgave him,
  • and desired to be reconciled. I drew the lad to my side, and there I
  • kept him a good while, and had much talk with him, in the course of
  • which he disclosed many points of feeling and thought I approved of in
  • my son. I found, it is true, few elements of the “good fellow” or the
  • “fine fellow” in him; scant sparkles of the spirit which loves to flash
  • over the wine cup, or which kindles the passions to a destroying
  • fire; but I saw in the soil of his heart healthy and swelling germs
  • of compassion, affection, fidelity. I discovered in the garden of his
  • intellect a rich growth of wholesome principles--reason, justice, moral
  • courage, promised, if not blighted, a fertile bearing. So I bestowed on
  • his large forehead, and on his cheek--still pale with tears--a proud and
  • contented kiss, and sent him away comforted. Yet I saw him the next day
  • laid on the mound under which Yorke had been buried, his face covered
  • with his hands; he was melancholy for some weeks, and more than a year
  • elapsed before he would listen to any proposal of having another dog.
  • Victor learns fast. He must soon go to Eton, where, I suspect, his first
  • year or two will be utter wretchedness: to leave me, his mother, and his
  • home, will give his heart an agonized wrench; then, the fagging will not
  • suit him--but emulation, thirst after knowledge, the glory of success,
  • will stir and reward him in time. Meantime, I feel in myself a strong
  • repugnance to fix the hour which will uproot my sole olive branch, and
  • transplant it far from me; and, when I speak to Frances on the subject,
  • I am heard with a kind of patient pain, as though I alluded to some
  • fearful operation, at which her nature shudders, but from which her
  • fortitude will not permit her to recoil. The step must, however, be
  • taken, and it shall be; for, though Frances will not make a milksop of
  • her son, she will accustom him to a style of treatment, a forbearance,
  • a congenial tenderness, he will meet with from none else. She sees, as
  • I also see, a something in Victor’s temper--a kind of electrical ardour
  • and power--which emits, now and then, ominous sparks; Hunsden calls it
  • his spirit, and says it should not be curbed. I call it the leaven of
  • the offending Adam, and consider that it should be, if not WHIPPED out
  • of him, at least soundly disciplined; and that he will be cheap of
  • any amount of either bodily or mental suffering which will ground him
  • radically in the art of self-control. Frances gives this something in
  • her son’s marked character no name; but when it appears in the grinding
  • of his teeth, in the glittering of his eye, in the fierce revolt of
  • feeling against disappointment, mischance, sudden sorrow, or supposed
  • injustice, she folds him to her breast, or takes him to walk with her
  • alone in the wood; then she reasons with him like any philosopher, and
  • to reason Victor is ever accessible; then she looks at him with eyes of
  • love, and by love Victor can be infallibly subjugated; but will reason
  • or love be the weapons with which in future the world will meet his
  • violence? Oh, no! for that flash in his black eye--for that cloud on
  • his bony brow--for that compression of his statuesque lips, the lad will
  • some day get blows instead of blandishments--kicks instead of kisses;
  • then for the fit of mute fury which will sicken his body and madden
  • his soul; then for the ordeal of merited and salutary suffering, out of
  • which he will come (I trust) a wiser and a better man.
  • I see him now; he stands by Hunsden, who is seated on the lawn under the
  • beech; Hunsden’s hand rests on the boy’s collar, and he is instilling
  • God knows what principles into his ear. Victor looks well just now, for
  • he listens with a sort of smiling interest; he never looks so like his
  • mother as when he smiles--pity the sunshine breaks out so rarely! Victor
  • has a preference for Hunsden, full as strong as I deem desirable, being
  • considerably more potent, decided, and indiscriminating, than any I ever
  • entertained for that personage myself. Frances, too, regards it with a
  • sort of unexpressed anxiety; while her son leans on Hunsden’s knee, or
  • rests against his shoulder, she roves with restless movement round,
  • like a dove guarding its young from a hovering hawk; she says she wishes
  • Hunsden had children of his own, for then he would better know the
  • danger of inciting their pride end indulging their foibles.
  • Frances approaches my library window; puts aside the honeysuckle which
  • half covers it, and tells me tea is ready; seeing that I continue busy
  • she enters the room, comes near me quietly, and puts her hand on my
  • shoulder.
  • “Monsieur est trop applique.”
  • “I shall soon have done.”
  • She draws a chair near, and sits down to wait till I have finished; her
  • presence is as pleasant to my mind as the perfume of the fresh hay and
  • spicy flowers, as the glow of the westering sun, as the repose of the
  • midsummer eve are to my senses.
  • But Hunsden comes; I hear his step, and there he is, bending through the
  • lattice, from which he has thrust away the woodbine with unsparing hand,
  • disturbing two bees and a butterfly.
  • “Crimsworth! I say, Crimsworth! take that pen out of his hand, mistress,
  • and make him lift up his head.”
  • “Well, Hunsden? I hear you--”
  • “I was at X---- yesterday! your brother Ned is getting richer than
  • Croesus by railway speculations; they call him in the Piece Hall a stag
  • of ten; and I have heard from Brown. M. and Madame Vandenhuten and Jean
  • Baptiste talk of coming to see you next month. He mentions the Pelets
  • too; he says their domestic harmony is not the finest in the world, but
  • in business they are doing ‘on ne peut mieux,’ which circumstance
  • he concludes will be a sufficient consolation to both for any little
  • crosses in the affections. Why don’t you invite the Pelets to ----shire,
  • Crimsworth? I should so like to see your first flame, Zoraide. Mistress,
  • don’t be jealous, but he loved that lady to distraction; I know it for a
  • fact. Brown says she weighs twelve stones now; you see what you’ve
  • lost, Mr. Professor. Now, Monsieur and Madame, if you don’t come to tea,
  • Victor and I will begin without you.”
  • “Papa, come!”
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Professor, by (AKA Charlotte
  • Bronte) Currer Bell
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROFESSOR ***
  • ***** This file should be named 1028-0.txt or 1028-0.zip ***** This and
  • all associated files of various formats will be found in: http://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/2/1028/
  • Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer, and David Widger
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be
  • renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
  • owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
  • you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
  • and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in
  • the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
  • distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the
  • PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
  • registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
  • unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
  • for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
  • may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
  • works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
  • printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public
  • domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
  • especially commercial redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU
  • DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree
  • to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
  • terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
  • copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used
  • on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree
  • to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that
  • you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without
  • complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C
  • below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help
  • preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
  • See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in
  • the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you
  • are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent
  • you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
  • derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
  • Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic
  • works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with
  • the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
  • associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
  • agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached
  • full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with
  • others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing
  • or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  • it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with
  • the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work,
  • you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through
  • 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute
  • this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other
  • than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
  • version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
  • (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
  • to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
  • of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
  • Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access
  • to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
  • in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
  • owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as
  • set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection.
  • Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the
  • medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
  • not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
  • errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
  • defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
  • codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  • of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
  • YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
  • BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
  • PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
  • ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
  • ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
  • EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect
  • in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive
  • a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written
  • explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received
  • the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your
  • written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the
  • defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’ WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation,
  • the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm’s
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain
  • freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
  • permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To
  • learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
  • how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
  • Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
  • of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
  • Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number
  • is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
  • The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887,
  • email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official page
  • at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
  • public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing
  • the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
  • distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array
  • of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
  • $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
  • the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
  • DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
  • visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
  • statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
  • the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
  • including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
  • please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
  • a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
  • in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including
  • how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
  • our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.